Selected quad for the lemma: reason_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
reason_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 3,753 5 9.2711 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A71307 Purchas his pilgrimes. part 2 In fiue bookes. The first, contayning the voyages and peregrinations made by ancient kings, patriarkes, apostles, philosophers, and others, to and thorow the remoter parts of the knowne world: enquiries also of languages and religions, especially of the moderne diuersified professions of Christianitie. The second, a description of all the circum-nauigations of the globe. The third, nauigations and voyages of English-men, alongst the coasts of Africa ... The fourth, English voyages beyond the East Indies, to the ilands of Iapan, China, Cauchinchina, the Philippinæ with others ... The fifth, nauigations, voyages, traffiques, discoueries, of the English nation in the easterne parts of the world ... The first part. Purchas, Samuel, 1577?-1626. 1625 (1625) STC 20509_pt2; ESTC S111862 280,496 1,168

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

man_n read_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n and_o judge_v and_o now_o whether_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v at_o such_o open_a enmity_n with_o 1._o scripture_n 2._o the_o church_n 3._o tradition_n 4._o father_n 5._o council_n 6._o some_o pope_n 7._o the_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o world_n even_o their_o own_o 8._o unity_n of_o christian_n 9_o knowledge_n 10._o experience_n of_o believer_n 11._o charity_n 12._o purity_n of_o worship_n 13._o holiness_n 14._o common_a honesty_n 15._o and_o to_o civil_a government_n and_o peace_n which_o may_v all_o easy_o be_v full_o prove_v though_o here_o but_o touch_v i_o say_v whether_o such_o a_o religion_n shall_v be_v embrace_v and_o advance_v with_o such_o diligence_n and_o violence_n and_o man_n soul_n lay_v upon_o it_o be_v the_o controversy_n before_o we_o and_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v tolerate_v even_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o people_n soul_n be_v now_o the_o question_n which_o the_o juggle_a papist_n have_v set_v a_o foot_n among_o those_o that_o have_v make_v themselves_o our_o ruler_n and_o there_o be_v find_v man_n among_o we_o that_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n and_o godly_a that_o plead_v for_o the_o say_a toleration_n and_o consequent_o for_o the_o deliver_v up_o of_o these_o nation_n to_o popery_n if_o not_o to_o spanish_a or_o other_o foreign_a power_n which_o if_o they_o effect_v and_o after_o their_o contrary_a profession_n prove_v such_o traitor_n to_o christ_n his_o gospel_n and_o their_o posterity_n as_o they_o leave_v the_o land_n of_o their_o nativity_n in_o misery_n they_o shall_v leave_v their_o stink_a name_n for_o a_o reproach_n and_o curse_v to_o future_a generation_n and_o on_o such_o pillar_n shall_v be_v write_v this_o pride_n self-seeking_a uncharitableness_n and_o schism_n have_v do_v if_o thou_o marvel_v reader_n that_o the_o learned_a author_n of_o this_o book_n and_o i_o do_v join_v thus_o against_o the_o common_a adversary_n after_o our_o own_o difference_n in_o the_o one_o point_n of_o infant-baptism_n thou_o do_v but_o marvel_n that_o we_o be_v christian_n and_o have_v not_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o on_o the_o account_n of_o our_o imperfection_n and_o little_a difference_n cast_v away_o our_o salvation_n and_o the_o church_n peace_n be_v it_o know_v to_o you_o that_o we_o be_v some_o year_n elder_a than_o when_o our_o difference_n begin_v and_o therefore_o if_o we_o have_v make_v no_o progress_n in_o holiness_n we_o be_v unexcusable_a and_o we_o know_v that_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o holy_a love_n be_v strong_a in_o grace_n marvel_v not_o then_o if_o we_o get_v some_o little_a increase_n by_o the_o opportunity_n and_o mercy_n we_o possess_v and_o if_o we_o forget_v not_o that_o we_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o same_o kingdom_n where_o we_o hope_v to_o live_v in_o perfect_a love_n when_o we_o draw_v near_o to_o it_o and_o see_v that_o long_o we_o can_v be_v thence_o and_o when_o we_o see_v what_o havoc_n the_o devil_n have_v make_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o multitude_n seem_o religious_a by_o uncharitableness_n and_o schism_n i_o be_o sure_a the_o soul_n that_o be_v most_o for_o unity_n and_o love_n be_v like_a to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n this_o also_o be_v my_o answer_n to_o the_o papist_n that_o i_o know_v will_v make_v it_o my_o reproach_n that_o i_o hold_v so_o much_o communion_n with_o anabaptist_n that_o be_v that_o i_o be_o not_o as_o uncharitable_a and_o schismatical_a as_o they_o that_o confine_v the_o church_n to_o their_o delude_a faction_n we_o own_v nothing_o in_o each_o other_o that_o we_o discern_v to_o be_v evil_a but_o we_o unanimous_o practice_v so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v agree_v if_o sin_n have_v leave_v england_n and_o europe_n any_o hope_n the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o a_o divide_a self-destroying_a generation_n and_o suffer_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n profess_v godliness_n to_o drive_v away_o the_o gospel_n and_o send_v it_o to_o america_n according_a to_o mr._n herbert_n sad_a conjecture_n in_o his_o church_n militant_a and_o o_o that_o professor_n of_o godliness_n will_v consider_v both_o what_o they_o have_v do_v and_o how_o much_o of_o holiness_n do_v consist_v in_o charity_n unity_n and_o peace_n and_o leave_v not_o to_o the_o papist_n the_o temptation_n or_o honour_n of_o seem_v more_o unanimous_a and_o peaceable_a than_o we_o lest_o they_o seem_v to_o themselves_o and_o other_o more_o holy_a than_o we_o experience_n and_o judgement_n will_v leave_v we_o the_o most_o unexcusable_a people_n under_o heaven_n if_o we_o prevent_v not_o our_o own_o and_o the_o church_n ruin_n by_o a_o speedy_a diligent_a return_n to_o charity_n and_o peace_n as_o these_o be_v the_o thought_n which_o i_o judge_v most_o necessary_a on_o this_o occasion_n to_o communicate_v so_o be_v they_o the_o matter_n of_o my_o daily_a prayer_n reader_n the_o time_n require_v thou_o to_o be_v well_o verse_v in_o the_o controversy_n with_o the_o papist_n if_o thou_o love_v thy_o faith_n and_o soul_n be_v not_o lazy_a but_o as_o there_o be_v multitude_n of_o excellent_a treatise_n at_o hand_n against_o popery_n be_v not_o through_o negligence_n a_o stranger_n to_o they_o and_o among_o other_o in_o this_o treatise_n thou_o will_v find_v the_o adversary_n solid_o confute_v and_o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o reason_n detect_v which_o brief_o i_o do_v in_o his_o most_o material_a part_n in_o my_o key_n for_o catholic_n and_o among_o the_o many_o excellent_a treatise_n against_o they_o with_o which_o shop_n and_o library_n abound_v i_o commend_v to_o the_o country_n reader_n that_o will_v see_v much_o in_o a_o little_a room_n and_o know_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o confute_v popery_n two_o little_a treatise_n viz._n dr._n challoner_n credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la and_o dr._n moulin_n answer_n to_o cotton_n question_n with_o the_o question_n and_o challenge_n annex_v and_o for_o argument_n against_o toleration_n of_o popery_n dr._n sutliffe_n answer_n to_o the_o lay_v papist_n petition_v for_o toleration_n and_o powel_n answer_n to_o the_o same_o who_o side_n the_o scripture_n be_v on_o read_v a_o little_a book_n call_v the_o abatement_n of_o popish_a brag_v by_o alexander_n cook_n read_v also_o their_o own_o catholic_n moderator_n prove_v protestant_n no_o heretic_n and_o the_o catholic_n judge_n or_o moderator_n of_o the_o moderator_n by_o john_n of_o the_o cross_n etc._n etc._n short_o i_o hope_v you_o may_v have_v dr._n moulin_n excellent_a treatise_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n translate_v by_o his_o reverend_a son_n and_o now_o go_v to_o the_o press_n the_o lord_n grant_v that_o man_n refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o to_o their_o salvation_n and_o their_o base_a subject_n it_o to_o their_o pride_n and_o worldly_a interest_n provoke_v not_o god_n to_o give_v they_o over_o to_o believe_v such_o lie_n as_o be_v here_o detect_v and_o to_o withdraw_v the_o gospel_n from_o a_o unworthy_a nation_n amen_n novemb_n 11._o 1659._o ri._n baxter_n errata_fw-la page_n 4._o margin_n read_v white_a or_o de_fw-la albiis_fw-la sonus_fw-la p._n 5._o l._n 22._o r._n ephes_n 1._o 23._o p._n 8._o l._n 2._o r._n ezek._n 37._o p._n 9_o l._n 30._o r._n be_v p._n 13_o l._n 20._o r._n six_o l._n 22._o r._n he_o p._n 15._o l._n 3._o 5._o r._n primacy_n l._n 5._o r._n last_o l._n 9_o 10._o r._n inconsequent_a l._n 34._o r._n remove_v p._n 16._o l._n 7._o r._n better_a l._n 9_o r._n primacy_n p._n 17._o l._n 6._o r._n decree_v p._n 19_o l._n 33._o r._n bring_v p._n 21._o l._n 5._o r._n milevis_n p._n 24._o l._n 24._o r._n nine_o p._n 25._o l._n 9_o r._n marozia_n l._n 41._o r._n gandavensis_fw-la andegavensis_fw-la p._n 26._o l._n 11._o r._n ego_fw-la p._n 32._o l._n 3._o r._n ivo_n p._n 36._o l._n 30._o r._n to_o the._n l._n 35._o r._n council_n p._n 39_o l._n 37._o r._n the._n p._n 43._o l._n 28._o r._n armenian_n p._n 50._o l._n 26._o r._n rood_n l._n 38._o r._n second_o p._n 52._o l._n 12._o r._n dr._n p._n 54._o l._n 17._o r._n way_n of_o p._n 55._o l._n 1._o r._n thuanus_n p._n 58._o l._n 14._o r._n commemorative_n p._n 59_o l._n 41._o r._n our_o p._n 65._o l._n 29._o r._n conspicuity_n p._n 66._o l._n 14._o r._n have_v say_v p._n 70._o l._n 20._o r._n ambiguity_n p._n 73._o l._n 19_o r._n palpable_a p._n 80._o l._n 8._o r._n by_o which_o p._n 91._o l._n 46._o r._n truth_n p._n 95._o l._n 12._o r._n bannez_fw-fr p._n 96._o l._n 11._o r._n do_v not_o p._n 98._o l._n 46._o r._n of_o p._n 110._o l._n 32._o r._n conceit_n p._n 111._o l._n 22._o r._n according_o l._n 23._o r._n veal_v l._n 40._o r._n faction_n
in_o his_o day_n of_o which_o he_o warn_v christian_n and_o our_o lord_n christ_n command_v revel_v 2._o 2._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o that_o he_o have_v try_v some_o that_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o have_v find_v they_o liar_n as_o for_o some_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o ancient_n have_v call_v apostolical_a tradition_n the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v reject_v they_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o millenaries_n the_o keep_n of_o easter_n as_o the_o quartodeciman_n hold_v the_o giving_z the_o communion_n to_o infant_n and_o many_o more_o and_o therefore_o all_o apostolical_a tradition_n so_o term_v can_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o trial_n nor_o can_v they_o give_v we_o any_o sure_a note_n by_o which_o we_o may_v distinguish_v genuine_a apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a from_o they_o that_o be_v supposititious_a it_o be_v true_a the_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n while_o they_o live_v and_o there_o be_v access_n to_o they_o may_v be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o try_v spirit_n by_o but_o the_o relation_n of_o irenaeus_n lib._n 2._o adv_n haeres_fw-la cap._n 39_o about_o christ_n age_n and_o the_o censure_n give_v of_o papias_n in_o eusebius_n plain_o show_v how_o quick_o such_o tradition_n come_v to_o be_v mistake_n and_o the_o very_a reason_n of_o john_n 1_o epist_n 4._o 1._o do_v take_v we_o off_o from_o try_v by_o such_o tradition_n because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o deceiver_n and_o therefore_o require_v that_o such_o spirit_n as_o pretend_a tradition_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o a_o unerring_a rule_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o h._n t._n take_v up_o the_o blasphemous_a reproach_n which_o some_o impudent_a rail_a papist_n have_v heretofore_o give_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o it_o bid_v we_o not_o try_v by_o the_o dead_a letter_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v the_o scripture_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o sure_o be_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o such_o impure_a mouth_n as_o in_o love_n to_o their_o romish_a idol_n endeavour_v to_o disgrace_v the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v true_a the_o law_n engrave_v in_o stone_n be_v term_v 2_o cor._n 3._o 6._o the_o kill_a letter_n yet_o not_o of_o itself_o for_o elsewhere_o act._n 7._o 38._o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v term_v the_o live_a oracle_n but_o by_o accident_n in_o that_o it_o can_v not_o give_v life_n gal_n 3._o 21._o in_o that_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 8._o 3._o it_o do_v kill_v that_o be_v condemn_v man_n as_o guilty_a of_o sin_n and_o so_o accurse_v by_o it_o gal._n 3._o 10._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v term_v live_v heb._n 4._o 12._o the_o word_n of_o life_n phil._n 2._o 16._o and_o our_o lord_n christ_n bid_v the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o they_o do_v think_v they_o have_v eternal_a life_n john_n 5._o 39_o and_o john_n 20._o 31._o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n so_o that_o just_o may_v h._n t._n with_o such_o other_o as_o before_o he_o have_v do_v the_o like_a be_v charge_v with_o impiety_n in_o his_o disparaging_o term_v the_o holy_a scripture_n especial_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o dead_a letter_n which_o paul_n call_v the_o word_n of_o life_n but_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o mean_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v hear_v both_o party_n and_o so_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o a_o point_n of_o controversy_n if_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n he_o may_v term_v the_o church_n sentence_v print_v or_o write_v in_o parchment_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a the_o dead_a letter_n as_o well_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o sure_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n suppose_v the_o trent_n council_n approve_v by_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o and_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n do_v no_o more_o hear_v or_o speak_v then_o the_o scripture_n and_o it_o sure_o discover_v a_o extreme_a perverseness_n and_o malignity_n of_o spirit_n in_o papist_n that_o refuse_v to_o be_v try_v by_o scripture_n as_o be_v dead_a and_o require_v a_o live_a judge_n to_o end_v controversy_n when_o the_o council_n and_o pope_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n they_o will_v try_v by_o be_v as_o much_o dead_a as_o the_o scripture_n which_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o conceive_v they_o do_v as_o foresee_v that_o if_o their_o proselyte_n will_v try_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v not_o stand_v as_o for_o humane_a reason_n no_o protestant_n that_o i_o know_v make_v that_o the_o rule_n by_o which_o he_o be_v to_o try_v the_o spirit_n nor_o his_o own_o private_a spirit_n if_o by_o it_o be_v mean_v his_o own_o council_n but_o we_o say_v that_o every_o man_n be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n or_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n and_o the_o ability_n of_o his_o own_o intelligent_a spirit_n as_o the_o instrument_n or_o mean_n by_o which_o he_o be_v to_o try_v whether_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v propound_v to_o he_o be_v according_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o this_o he_o do_v no_o more_o than_o christ_n require_v luke_n 12._o 57_o yea_o and_o why_o even_o of_o yourselves_o judge_v you_o not_o what_o be_v right_a without_o the_o use_n of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o man_n to_o make_v trial_n as_o man_n and_o this_o the_o papist_n themselves_o must_v allow_v man_n to_o do_v according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n for_o how_o else_o can_v they_o hear_v and_o believe_v the_o church_n if_o they_o do_v not_o use_v their_o reason_n to_o know_v the_o church_n and_o what_o it_o say_v they_o must_v make_v man_n block_n or_o brute_n if_o they_o allow_v they_o not_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n to_o try_v by_o when_o h._n t._n bring_v argument_n from_o text_n of_o scripture_n council_n father_n common_a sense_n and_o experience_n as_o his_o title_n page_n pretend_v will_v he_o not_o have_v man_n to_o use_v their_o reason_n to_o try_v whether_o he_o do_v it_o right_o will_v he_o have_v we_o go_v to_o a_o council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o know_v whether_o his_o argument_n be_v good_a what_o a_o mere_a mockery_n be_v this_o of_o man_n to_o write_v book_n to_o teach_v people_n and_o yet_o not_o permit_v people_n to_o use_v humane_a reason_n to_o try_v their_o tenet_n whether_o they_o be_v according_a to_o scripture_n council_n father_n common_a sense_n and_o experience_n as_o if_o we_o must_v not_o only_o take_v a_o ecumenical_a council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o h._n t._n and_o every_o popish_a writer_n who_o book_n be_v license_v to_o be_v infallible_a if_o he_o write_v be_v it_o not_o that_o we_o may_v read_v and_o will_v he_o have_v we_o read_v and_o not_o judge_v and_o can_v we_o judge_v without_o humane_a reason_n but_o it_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o these_o man_n to_o write_v and_o speak_v in_o point_n of_o controversy_n but_o not_o to_o permit_v their_o disciple_n unless_o they_o judge_v they_o firm_a to_o they_o whatever_o they_o meet_v with_o to_o the_o contrary_a to_o examine_v their_o adversary_n tenant_n argument_n and_o answer_n by_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o such_o impartial_a writer_n as_o will_v discover_v their_o deceit_n but_o either_o by_o some_o device_n or_o plain_a prohibition_n to_o deter_v they_o from_o search_v after_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v on_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n determination_n without_o examine_v h._n t._n further_o add_v obj._n the_o church_n may_v err_v at_o least_o in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a answ_n all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v fundamental_a at_o least_o for_o the_o formal_a motive_n of_o belief_n to_o wit_n the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v though_o not_o always_o for_o the_o matter_n and_o if_o it_o be_v once_o sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n as_o so_o reveal_v we_o be_v then_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o so_o that_o their_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o be_v idle_a beside_o if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o than_o protestant_n be_v schismatic_n at_o least_o in_o revelt_v from_o she_o in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o sin_n against_o charity_n by_o accuse_v we_o of_o idolatry_n i_o reply_v 1._o sure_o this_o exception_n be_v idle_a to_o argue_v the_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o user_n of_o it_o take_v from_o the_o matter_n according_a to_o which_o he_o confess_v all_o be_v not_o fundamental_a that_o god_n reveal_v to_o be_v idle_a because_o all_o
missal_n and_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n they_o confess_v they_o use_v the_o help_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o one_o pope_n alter_v what_o a_o former_a do_v and_o judge_v of_o controversy_n from_o who_o none_o may_v appeal_v and_o all_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o stand_v to_o his_o definition_n h._n t._n say_v further_a object_n the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 15._o answ_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o grant_v by_o humane_a reason_n or_o the_o private_a spirit_n i_o deny_v and_o such_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o part_n in_o the_o whole_a not_o out_o of_o it_o with_o sectary_n i_o reply_v it_o be_v true_a the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v true_o and_o confess_o apostolical_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o by_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o papist_n false_o call_v apostolical_a and_o it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n by_o humane_a reason_n not_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o the_o organ_n or_o mean_n of_o discern_v as_o the_o buyer_n judge_v whether_o he_o have_v measure_n by_o the_o ell_n as_o the_o rule_n and_o by_o the_o eye_n as_o the_o organ_n by_o which_o he_o compare_v the_o thing_n buy_v and_o the_o ell_n together_o and_o if_o by_o private_a spirit_n be_v mean_v nothing_o but_o his_o own_o ability_n to_o discern_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v by_o his_o private_a spirit_n and_o so_o do_v a_o papist_n that_o judge_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n and_o pope_n approbation_n judge_v what_o his_o priest_n suggest_v to_o he_o to_o be_v such_o by_o humane_a reason_n and_o his_o private_a spirit_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o if_o the_o judge_a be_v his_o act_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v by_o humane_a reason_n unless_o we_o imagine_v a_o man_n as_o a_o man_n to_o act_v without_o reason_n however_o this_o be_v clear_a by_o his_o confession_n that_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o a_o part_n in_o the_o whole_a and_o that_o he_o not_o only_o receive_v all_o that_o the_o church_n propound_v but_o judge_v and_o therefore_o do_v not_o rest_n on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n with_o a_o blind_a assent_n and_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o and_o this_o suppose_v that_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o to_o presuppose_v the_o church_n or_o pope_n or_o prelate_n or_o priest_n infallible_a but_o to_o examine_v what_o they_o say_v and_o to_o judge_v for_o himself_o whether_o they_o speak_v right_a or_o not_o h._n t._n proceed_v thus_o object_n right_o reason_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n therefore_o every_o man_n private_a reason_n must_v be_v judge_n for_o himself_o answ_n the_o antecedent_n i_o have_v sufficient_o refute_v and_o i_o also_o deny_v the_o consequence_n as_o the_o most_o gross_a and_o unreasonable_a assertion_n of_o all_o other_o though_o mr._n chillingsworth_n chief_a ground_n which_o appear_v thus_o i_o reply_v no_o protestant_n that_o i_o know_v say_v right_a reason_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o refute_v it_o nevertheless_o in_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o about_o this_o point_n he_o have_v refute_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a refutation_n to_o say_v without_o any_o reason_n or_o proof_n for_o it_o that_o we_o must_v not_o try_v all_o thing_n by_o humane_a reason_n or_o the_o private_a spirit_n which_o be_v a_o way_n of_o re●uting_v fit_a enough_o for_o this_o scribbler_n though_o unfit_a for_o a_o disputer_n 2._o nor_o do_v i_o think_v any_o protestant_n make_v that_o consequence_n which_o be_v here_o set_v down_o whereas_o he_o a●cribes_v it_o to_o master_n chillingworth_n he_o have_v deal_v honest_o if_o he_o have_v quote_v the_o place_n that_o we_o may_v without_o read_v a_o whole_a book_n have_v find_v it_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o master_n chillingworth_n chap._n 2._o part_n 1._o sect._n 104._o of_o his_o answer_n to_o charity_n maintain_v against_o knot_n assert_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o personal_a judge_n in_o point_n of_o controversy_n concern_v the_o christian_a faith_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o and_o therefore_o the_o church_n must_v be_v it_o sai_z scripture_n be_v not_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n but_o a_o rule_n to_o judge_v they_o by_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v judge_v by_o scripture_n and_o of_o those_o that_o arise_v among_o such_o as_o believe_v the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o controversy_n shall_v be_v decide_v that_o in_o doubtful_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n they_o shall_v be_v determine_v but_o that_o each_o shall_v bear_v with_o other_o and_o he_o be_v safe_a that_o use_v mean_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n though_o he_o miss_v it_o that_o fundamental_o be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o m●st_o unlearned_a may_v understand_v these_o by_o the_o translation_n of_o place_n on_o no_o side_n gainsay_v that_o each_o man_n own_o reason_n be_v judge_n for_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o personal_a judge_n appoint_v by_o god_n as_o knot_n will_v have_v that_o his_o reason_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o personal_a judge_n in_o civil_a controversy_n hold_v not_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o every_o man_n particular_a reason_n be_v that_o by_o which_o he_o be_v to_o judge_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o doctrine_n be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n that_o even_o according_a to_o the_o way_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o give_v of_o the_o office_n of_o judicature_n to_o the_o church_n come_v to_o confer_v it_o upon_o every_o particular_a man_n for_o 1._o before_o any_o man_n believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a he_o must_v have_v reason_n to_o induce_v he_o to_o believe_v it_o so_o else_o why_o do_v they_o set_v down_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o 2._o suppose_v they_o be_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n they_o must_v use_v their_o own_o particular_a reason_n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o to_o that_o end_n popish_a doctor_n give_v note_n and_o mark_n whereby_o to_o discern_v it_o which_o be_v to_o no_o end_n if_o a_o christian_a must_v not_o use_v his_o reason_n to_o judge_v whether_o they_o be_v right_a or_o no._n so_o that_o in_o effect_n this_o be_v mr._n chillingworth_n be_v argument_n as_o i_o conceive_v it_o there_o be_v neither_o a_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a personal_a judge_n among_o man_n to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n among_o christian_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o appoint_a by_o god_n but_o each_o be_v to_o try_v for_o himself_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o even_o by_o popish_a writer_n own_o way_n he_o must_v use_v his_o particular_a reason_n to_o discern_v the_o validity_n of_o their_o proof_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o which_o be_v the_o church_n which_o must_v be_v his_o guide_n by_o the_o mark_n of_o i●_n therefore_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v yield_v that_o every_o man_n particular_a reason_n must_v be_v judge_n for_o himself_o now_o this_o which_o h._n t._n unskilful_o call_v the_o consequence_n it_o be_v the_o consequent_a only_o be_v no_o unreasonable_a much_o less_o gross_a assertion_n and_o may_v very_o well_o be_v mr._n chillingworth_n be_v ground_n in_o answer_v knot_n notwithstanding_o that_o which_o here_o h._n t._n produce_v to_o the_o contrary_n first_o say_v h._n t._n as_o contradict_v the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n no_o man_n know_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 11._o no_o man_n can_v say_v our_o lord_n jesus_n with_o true_a faith_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o by_o which_o grace_n we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o ourselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n ephes_n 2._o 8._o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o think_v any_o good_a thing_n ourselves_o as_o of_o self_n but_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v from_o god_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 5._o we_o must_v captivate_v our_o understanding_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n i_o reply_v mr._n chillingworth_n tenet_n be_v right_o understand_v contradict_v none_o of_o these_o text_n for_o 1._o when_o he_o say_v every_o man_n private_a reason_n be_v to_o judge_v for_o himself_o he_o mean_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o whether_o that_o which_o some_o say_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n be_v so_o or_o not_o so_o that_o the_o judge_v which_o he_o assert_n be_v of_o thing_n reveal_v by_o the_o word_n
wherein_o it_o be_v reveal_v not_o a_o find_v out_o what_o be_v not_o reveal_v but_o 1_o cor._n 2_o 11._o speak_v of_o a_o knowledge_n of_o invention_n by_o search_n into_o the_o thing_n without_o revelation_n a_o knowledge_n of_o invention_n not_o of_o discretion_n as_o the_o word_n vers_fw-la 10._o show_n but_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o to_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n for_o the_o spirit_n search_v all_o thing_n even_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n now_o mr._n chillingworth_n so_o far_o as_o i_o discern_v do_v never_o assert_v that_o every_o man_n private_a reason_n by_o its_o own_o search_n can_v ever_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n reveal_v they_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o they_o to_o we_o but_o that_o each_o man_n private_a reason_n since_o the_o apostle_n have_v reveal_v they_o in_o their_o write_n may_v judge_v whether_o that_o which_o one_o teacher_n say_v be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n be_v true_a than_o what_o another_o say_v he_o make_v reason_n not_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o spirit_n revelation_n but_o of_o man_n interpretation_n and_o inference_n 2_o when_o mr._n chillingworth_n make_v each_o particular_a man_n reason_n or_o his_o private_a spirit_n the_o judge_n for_o himself_o he_o mean_v right_a reason_n not_o every_o fancy_n which_o have_v no_o proof_n and_o that_o reason_n which_o he_o call_v right_a reason_n must_v be_v rectify_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o influx_n upon_o the_o understanding_n and_o so_o the_o text_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o be_v not_o against_o mr._n chillingworth_n 3._o when_o he_o mean_v that_o every_o private_a man_n reason_n or_o private_a spirit_n be_v a_o judge_n to_o each_o man_n he_o conceive_v as_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o discourse_n lead_v he_o to_o speak_v this_o judgement_n to_o be_v only_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o speech_n wherein_o the_o thing_n reveal_v be_v make_v know_v whence_o come_v a_o a_o speculative_a notional_a knowledge_n upon_o which_o a_o bare_a dogmatical_a faith_n follow_v but_o he_o assert_v not_o right_a reason_n rectify_v by_o common_a influx_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o understand_v only_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o such_o a_o text_n or_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o a_o proposition_n to_o be_v sufficient_a without_o a_o special_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n enable_v a_o man_n to_o see_v the_o beauty_n worth_a goodness_n of_o the_o thing_n thus_o believe_v above_o any_o other_o thing_n propound_v to_o be_v choose_v to_o beget_v a_o affective_a practical_a knowledge_n which_o beget_v faith_n of_o adherence_n of_o which_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o ephes_n 2._o 8._o 2_o cor._n 3._o 5._o &_o 10._o 5._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v so_o that_o mr._n chillingworth_n assertion_n right_o understand_v do_v well_o consist_v with_o these_o scripture_n it_o be_v no_o whit_n contradictory_n to_o these_o speech_n that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v by_o his_o invention_n the_o mystery_n hide_v in_o god_n but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o yet_o when_o it_o be_v reveal_v each_o man_n private_a reason_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o it_o be_v reveal_v and_o who_o doctrine_n be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o those_o scripture_n and_o though_o no_o man_n can_v fiducial_o and_o elective_o say_v jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o without_o the_o sanctify_a and_o renew_v or_o indwell_v of_o god_n spirit_n a_o person_n may_v by_o his_o private_a reason_n understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o speech_n jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o assent_v to_o it_o upon_o credible_a motive_n with_o a_o bare_a dogmatical_a faith_n and_o though_o save_v faith_n be_v the_o spetial_a gift_n of_o god_n to_o his_o elect_n yet_o in_o work_v faith_n god_n use_v man_n reason_n to_o understand_v what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v true_a and_o as_o h._n t._n say_v here_o p._n 77._o the_o discourse_n and_o approbation_n of_o reason_n be_v always_o a_o previous_a and_o necessary_a condition_n to_o our_o deliberate_a and_o rational_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o very_a act_n themselves_o be_v act_n of_o reason_n and_o though_o we_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o sufficient_a to_o think_v any_o good_a thing_n yet_o ourselves_o do_v think_v good_a thing_n and_o by_o reason_n rectify_v by_o god_n spirit_n do_v judge_v they_o to_o be_v good_a and_o though_o we_o be_v to_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n yet_o that_o obedience_n of_o faith_n to_o which_o our_o understanding_n be_v captivate_v be_v by_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o understanding_n upon_o the_o apprehension_n which_o our_o reason_n have_v of_o the_o good_a of_o that_o we_o assent_n to_o and_o that_o which_o we_o obey_v but_o say_v h._n t._n second_o because_o divine_a revelation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v or_o reject_v for_o their_o seem_a consonancy_n or_o repugnance_n to_o every_o man_n private_a reason_n but_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n propose_v as_o the_o immediate_a motive_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v as_o the_o high_a motive_n of_o our_o faith_n into_o which_o it_o be_v ultimate_o resolve_v nor_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o rational_a than_o to_o captivate_v and_o even_o renounce_v private_a reason_n where_o god_n the_o author_n of_o reason_n command_v it_o i_o reply_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o mr._n chillingworth_n will_v have_v say_v so_o too_o and_o have_v count_v it_o a_o injury_n do_v to_o he_o to_o suggest_v it_o as_o h._n t._n seem_v to_o do_v to_o any_o as_o if_o he_o mean_v otherwise_o provide_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n propose_v be_v mean_v not_o the_o pretend_a infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o prelate_n of_o it_o but_o either_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n comprehend_v the_o apostle_n or_o the_o probable_a and_o credible_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o teacher_n in_o it_o but_o it_o be_v likely_a h._n t._n mean_v it_o of_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o prelate_n of_o it_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o prove_v and_o till_o it_o be_v mr._n chillingworth_n assertion_n be_v not_o overthrow_v h._n t._n add_v three_o because_o if_o every_o man_n private_a reason_n be_v to_o judge_v for_o himself_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n than_o all_o the_o heresy_n that_o ever_o yet_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v good_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o sect_n of_o heretic_n who_o do_v not_o pretend_v both_o to_o reason_n and_o scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n how_o damnable_a soever_o and_o some_o of_o they_o such_o as_o be_v unaswerable_a by_o humane_a reason_n set_v aside_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o who_o can_v prove_v by_o private_a reason_n or_o by_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n against_o the_o arian_n that_o a_o spiritual_a and_o indivisible_a substance_n such_o as_o god_n be_v can_v beget_v a_o natural_a son_n of_o himself_o without_o a_o mother_n or_o against_o the_o sabellian_o and_o trinitarian_n that_o the_o same_o indivisible_a essence_n or_o divine_a nature_n can_v be_v at_o once_o in_o three_o distinct_a person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o against_o nestor_n and_o eutiche_n that_o one_o person_n can_v subsist_v in_o two_o different_a nature_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a in_o christ_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v high_a fundamental_o in_o christianity_n in_o all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o private_a reason_n must_v either_o bend_v the_o knee_n and_o be_v captivate_v to_o faith_n or_o become_v atheism_n i_o reply_v i_o conceive_v mr._n chillingworth_n will_v have_v say_v so_o too_o to_o wit_n that_o private_a reason_n must_v bend_v the_o knee_n and_o be_v captivate_v to_o faith_n in_o point_n reveal_v though_o it_o can_v comprehend_v how_o thing_n reveal_v shall_v be_v so_o and_o yet_o his_o assertion_n hold_v that_o each_o one_o private_a reason_n be_v to_o judge_v these_o to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o will_v judge_v they_o to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o evidence_n it_o have_v that_o these_o be_v divine_a revelation_n which_o right_a reason_n know_v to_o be_v so_o from_o the_o agreement_n with_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o present_a or_o late_o church_n authority_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n though_o term_v apostolical_a and_o those_o tenant_n which_o a_o private_a man_n reason_n find_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n though_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o this_o or_o former_a age_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n shall_v judge_v they_o heresy_n and_o the_o nicene_n or_o any_o other_o council_n condemn_v they_o yet_o be_v that_o person_n to_o hold_v they_o as_o truth_n provide_v he_o do_v use_v his_o reason_n aright_o
to_o discover_v the_o truth_n and_o though_o it_o be_v that_o council_n may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v useful_a when_o good_a choice_n have_v be_v make_v of_o person_n and_o undue_a practice_n to_o mislead_v and_o overawe_n they_o have_v be_v remove_v yet_o as_o nazianzen_n in_o his_o five_o and_o fifty_o epistle_n ad_fw-la procopium_n complain_v that_o he_o know_v no_o good_a issue_n of_o they_o so_o he_o that_o shall_v examine_v the_o carriage_n of_o thing_n in_o council_n even_o the_o best_a of_o they_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n will_v find_v reason_n not_o to_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o on_o trust_n mere_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o authority_n and_o for_o the_o council_n which_o have_v be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o activity_n and_o prevalency_n of_o faction_n and_o the_o unlearnedness_n of_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n in_o they_o will_v find_v more_o reason_n to_o be_v jealous_a of_o what_o council_n have_v determine_v they_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o they_o nor_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o if_o this_o judgement_n be_v allow_v to_o every_o private_a man_n than_o all_o or_o any_o heresy_n whatsoever_o have_v be_v good_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n but_o that_o those_o who_o have_v pretend_a reason_n and_o scripture_n have_v abuse_v both_o nor_o be_v h._n t._n his_o reason_n of_o force_n because_o heretic_n pretend_v to_o reason_n and_o scripture_n therefore_o every_o one_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v for_o himself_o and_o all_o heresy_n be_v sound_a doctrine_n any_o more_o than_o than_o this_o caviller_n pretend_v law_n and_o reason_n therefore_o judge_n that_o use_v their_o knowledge_n in_o the_o law_n and_o their_o reason_n in_o pass_a sentence_n do_v justify_v caviller_n or_o determine_v no_o better_o than_o caviller_n be_v the_o church_n authority_n infallible_a heretic_n might_n and_o do_v pretend_v to_o its_o authority_n and_o apostolic_a tradition_n and_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o these_o yet_o heresy_n may_v be_v take_v for_o sound_a doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o if_o private_a reason_n be_v make_v a_o judge_n for_o each_o one_o self_n yea_o many_o heresy_n have_v allege_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o have_v have_v some_o council_n or_o other_o perhaps_o more_o and_o more_o numerous_a to_o patronize_v they_o then_o the_o orthodox_n so_o that_o i_o may_v say_v setting_z aside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v now_o the_o rule_n by_o which_o to_o determine_v what_o be_v error_n what_o not_o neither_o the_o church_n authority_n nor_o unwritten_a tradition_n can_v prove_v a_o point_n to_o be_v heresy_n or_o extirpate_v it_o but_o rather_o propagate_v and_o establish_v error_n as_o by_o experience_n be_v manifest_a there_o be_v never_o more_o heresy_n establish_v and_o propagate_v by_o any_o one_o or_o more_o private_a man_n follow_v their_o reason_n then_o have_v be_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n suppose_v to_o be_v ecumenical_a and_o infallible_a nor_o be_v there_o any_o great_a cause_n of_o err_v then_o the_o confidence_n of_o infallibility_n nor_o any_o error_n so_o fast_o root_v as_o that_o which_o be_v decree_v by_o man_n that_o will_v confess_v no_o error_n as_o for_o those_o heresy_n which_o he_o reckon_v as_o unanswerable_a by_o humane_a reason_n if_o he_o mean_v they_o be_v unanswerable_a by_o humane_a reason_n how_o or_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o thing_n oppose_v by_o they_o be_v it_o be_v grant_v but_o of_o this_o mr._n chillingworth_n do_v not_o make_v humane_a reason_n judge_n if_o any_o humane_a reason_n can_v comprehend_v how_o a_o thing_n shall_v be_v nor_o can_v answer_v all_o objection_n yet_o if_o it_o judge_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v it_o even_o as_o mary_n be_v to_o believe_v she_o have_v a_o son_n though_o she_o know_v not_o how_o luk._n 1._o 34._o that_o which_o each_o man_n reason_n be_v to_o judge_v be_v not_o how_o a_o thing_n can_v be_v which_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v but_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o reveal_v and_o this_o he_o be_v to_o do_v not_o by_o a_o blind_a assent_n to_o what_o the_o church_n or_o his_o teacher_n say_v but_o by_o search_v as_o the_o beraean_o do_v act._n 17._o 11._o with_o god_n approbation_n even_o when_o paul_n preach_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n whether_o they_o say_v right_a and_o if_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o those_o name_v heretic_n say_v then_o be_v their_o tenant_n to_o be_v reject_v of_o which_o each_o person_n reason_n be_v to_o judge_v for_o himself_o he_o be_v to_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v according_a to_o his_o own_o faith_n if_o not_o the_o determination_n of_o council_n against_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o this_o manner_n of_o judge_v by_o reason_n will_v neither_o promote_v heresy_n nor_o atheism_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o the_o pope_n council_n church_n determination_n be_v count_v infallible_a it_o will_v perpetuate_v a_o error_n if_o once_o receive_v as_o too_o much_o woeful_a experience_n show_v in_o the_o roman_a papacy_n wherein_o the_o error_n of_o transubstantiation_n though_o it_o be_v such_o as_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n reason_n sense_n father_n that_o a_o man_n unprejudiced_a will_v think_v they_o mere_a mad_a man_n or_o phrenetick_a person_n who_o hold_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v by_o papist_n maintain_v i_o dare_v hardly_o say_v by_o the_o learned_a believe_v most_o obstinate_o and_o furious_o to_o this_o day_n final_o say_v h._n t._n because_o if_o private_a reason_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n it_o will_v evident_o follow_v the_o general_a council_n of_o all_o former_a age_n which_o have_v command_v all_o person_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o obey_v their_o definition_n and_o submit_v to_o their_o decree_n be_v the_o most_o tyrannical_a and_o unjust_a assembly_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o usurp_v such_o a_o power_n over_o man_n conscience_n and_o consequent_o that_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n on_o earth_n as_o a_o church_n or_o oblige_v guide_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o church_n government_n i_o reply_v though_o mr._n chillingworth_n say_v not_o private_a reason_n to_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n nor_o deny_v the_o church_n or_o council_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n but_o only_o the_o infallibility_n of_o they_o yet_o if_o he_o do_v say_v either_o neither_o of_o these_o thing_n will_v follow_v which_o h._n t._n make_v consequent_a thereon_o for_o notwithstanding_o such_o say_n he_o may_v deem_v council_n to_o have_v follow_v scripture_n and_o therefore_o not_o unjust_a in_o those_o command_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o church_n government_n oblige_v man_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n yet_o by_o virtue_n of_o god_n revelation_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nevertheless_o if_o i_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o speak_v my_o judgement_n free_o i_o do_v think_v that_o if_o not_o all_o yet_o most_o of_o the_o council_n term_v general_a have_v be_v for_o more_o than_o one_o hundred_o year_n too_o unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a in_o their_o command_n usurp_v the_o word_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 15._o 28._o too_o arrogant_o as_o if_o their_o authority_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o impose_v on_o man_n conscience_n burden_n too_o intolerable_a and_o that_o this_o have_v be_v a_o most_o pernicious_a engine_n of_o satan_n to_o cause_n division_n and_o mischief_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o certain_o if_o any_o have_v follow_v humane_a reason_n and_o a_o private_a spirit_n in_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_a matter_n of_o religion_n they_o have_v be_v pope_n and_o the_o council_n approve_v by_o pope_n who_o do_v almost_o in_o every_o thing_n in_o some_o thing_n express_o forsake_v the_o scripture_n and_o adhere_v to_o their_o own_o reason_n in_o their_o canon_n and_o decree_n and_o papist_n who_o receive_v their_o determination_n do_v forsake_v the_o guidance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o follow_v humane_a reason_n and_o a_o private_a spirit_n h._n t_o say_v further_a ob._n your_o therefore_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o whatever_a else_o you_o believe_v because_o you_o judge_v it_o reasonable_a to_o believe_v it_o and_o your_o very_a act_n of_o faith_n itself_o be_v a_o act_n of_o reason_n therefore_o reason_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n answ_n the_o discourse_n and_o approbation_n of_o reason_n be_v always_o a_o previous_a and_o necessary_a condition_n to_o our_o deliberate_a and_o rational_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o very_a act_n themselves_o be_v act_n of_o reason_n not_o discourse_v but_o simple_o assent_v all_o this_o i_o grant_v yes_o i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n because_o our_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o ultimate_o resolve_v into_o
faith_n or_o catholic_n church_n but_o not_o any_o long_o and_o this_o author_n may_v as_o some_o in_o case_n of_o marriage_n conceive_v he_o be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v faith_n with_o infidel_n and_o yet_o not_o with_o heretic_n and_o for_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_z 15._o 18._o neither_o dare_v protestant_n then_o trust_v to_o the_o safe_a conduct_n then_o give_v and_o before_o and_o since_o sad_a instance_n of_o papist_n perfidiousness_n have_v give_v too_o much_o occasion_n to_o protestant_n to_o suspect_v the_o lurk_a of_o a_o snake_n under_o the_o grass_n i_o mean_v some_o hide_a deceit_n under_o a_o covert_n of_o fair_a word_n especial_o when_o we_o consider_v this_o author_n a_o little_a before_o count_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n to_o be_v of_o faith_n sess_z 15._o 18._o in_o which_o sess_z 19_o that_o council_n as_o it_o be_v in_o binius_fw-la have_v these_o word_n the_o present_a holy_a synod_n do_v declare_v that_o no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o to_o ecclesiastic_a jurisdiction_n be_v generate_v or_o impediment_n can_v be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v make_v by_o any_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v by_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o other_o secular_a prince_n to_o heretic_n or_o defame_v of_o here●ie_n think_v so_o to_o recall_v the_o same_o from_o their_o error_n with_o whatsoever_o bond_n they_o have_v bind_v themselves_o but_o that_o the_o say_v safe_a conduct_n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o a_o competent_a judge_n and_o ecclesiastic_a to_o inquire_v of_o the_o error_n of_o such_o person_n and_o otherwise_o due_o to_o proceed_v against_o they_o and_o to_o punish_v they_o as_o much_o as_o justice_n shall_v persuade_v if_o they_o shall_v refuse_v stiff_o to_o revoke_v their_o error_n although_o trust_v to_o their_o safe_a conduct_n they_o have_v come_v to_o the_o place_n of_o judgement_n who_o otherwise_o will_v not_o have_v come_v nor_o do_v he_o that_o so_o promise_v when_o he_o have_v do_v what_o lie_v in_o he_o remain_v oblige_v by_o this_o in_o any_o thing_n which_o sure_o amount_v then_o to_o as_o much_o as_o this_o and_o have_v be_v thousand_o of_o time_n object_v by_o prince_n and_o other_o that_o public_a faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n and_o how_o little_a reason_n protestant_n have_v to_o trust_v papist_n not_o only_o the_o action_n of_o former_a papist_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_a but_o also_o of_o late_a their_o act_n in_o ireland_n poland_n piedmont_n show_n who_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o pope_n flatterer_n or_o particular_a doctor_n i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v shall_v he_o call_v bellarmine_n baronius_n or_o such_o like_a man_n so_o perhaps_o he_o may_v be_v serve_v as_o francis_n a_o st._n clara_n and_o other_o be_v i_o judge_v h._n t._n to_o be_v a_o gross_a flatterer_n in_o maintain_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o infallibility_n there_o be_v in_o this_o tenet_n no_o better_o than_o blasphemous_a antichristian_a flattery_n ascribe_v to_o some_o of_o the_o worst_a and_o oftentimes_o most_o ignorant_a man_n that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o for_o his_o corollary_n i_o deny_v the_o major_n and_o minor_a both_o since_o that_o may_v be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v neither_o local_a personal_a succession_n nor_o conspicuous_a visibility_n nor_o such_o unity_n universality_n infallibility_n sanctity_n power_n of_o miracle_n universal_a bishop_n as_o h._n t._n require_v as_o necessary_a to_o a_o true_a church_n nor_o have_v he_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o these_o mark_n do_v agree_v to_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n or_o bishop_n and_o no_o other_o but_o his_o mistake_n in_o these_o be_v show_v i_o follow_v he_o in_o the_o rest_n artic_a viii_o unwritten_a tradition_n now_o no_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o h._n t._n term_n apostolical_a be_v not_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n sect_n i._o the_o argument_n for_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o mean_n of_o plant_v and_o conserve_n faith_n at_o first_o be_v answer_v h._n t._n entitle_v his_o eight_o article_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o say_v our_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n or_o a_o delivery_n of_o doctrine_n from_o father_n to_o son_n by_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v so_o deliver_v which_o we_o prove_v thus_o the_o first_o argument_n that_o be_v now_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o essential_a mean_n of_o plant_v and_o conserve_n it_o at_o first_o but_o oral_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o write_v book_n be_v the_o essential_a mean_n of_o plant_v and_o conserve_n it_o at_o first_o therefore_o oral_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o write_v book_n be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v because_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v immutable_a and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o faith_n itself_o be_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v because_o the_o first_o gospel_n be_v not_o write_v till_o eight_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n or_o thereabouts_o in_o which_o space_n the_o apostle_n have_v preach_v and_o plant_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n in_o many_o nation_n over_o almost_o all_o the_o world_n add_v to_o this_o that_o many_o age_n be_v pass_v before_o all_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v disperse_v and_o accept_v for_o canonical_a by_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o when_o any_o difference_n arise_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n among_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o age_n they_o be_v not_o to_o inquire_v what_o have_v be_v write_v but_o whether_o the_o apostle_n so_o teach_v answ_n this_o doctor_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o ignorance_n or_o heedlessness_n or_o malignity_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v worse_a than_o his_o fellow_n yea_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n and_o pope_n pius_n the_o fourth_n bull._n for_o whereas_o in_o the_o trent_n council_n sess_z 4._o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o truth_n and_o discipline_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v contain_v in_o write_a book_n and_o tradition_n without_o writing_n and_o will_v have_v both_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n and_o reverence_n of_o piety_n and_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o his_o bull_n require_v the_o admission_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n h._n t._n conclude_v that_o write_v book_n be_v not_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o oral_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o have_v not_o be_v the_o entire_a rule_n of_o faith_n he_o have_v agree_v with_o the_o trent_n council_n and_o the_o pope_n bull_n but_o now_o he_o contradict_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o protestant_n and_o his_o argument_n do_v as_o well_o conclude_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a but_o leave_v he_o to_o be_v correct_v by_o his_o fellow_n let_v we_o view_v his_o dispute_n set_v aside_o his_o nonsense_n speech_n of_o be_v receive_v as_o faith_n in_o stead_n of_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o take_v apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o that_o which_o be_v true_o so_o call_v i_o grant_v his_o tenet_n and_o say_v with_o he_o that_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v or_o that_o delivery_n of_o doctrine_n from_o father_n to_o son_n by_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o faith_n that_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o christian_a divine_a faith_n which_o all_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v but_o what_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v so_o deliver_v for_o though_o in_o general_a any_o divine_a revelation_n be_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o christian_a faith_n by_o who_o or_o what_o way_n soever_o it_o be_v deliver_v and_o god_n have_v deliver_v divers_a revelation_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v object_n of_o faith_n yet_o since_o now_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v those_o divine_a revelation_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o think_v needful_a for_o we_o to_o know_v and_o believe_v to_o salvation_n be_v write_v and_o these_o write_n be_v convey_v from_o father_n to_o son_n by_o hand_n to_o hand_n we_o grant_v the_o tenet_n be_v mean_v of_o they_o and_o yield_v further_o that_o if_o they_o can_v
infallible_a since_o sensible_a evidence_n in_o a_o world_n of_o eye-witness_n unanimous_o concur_v be_v altogether_o infallible_a how_o fallible_a soever_o man_n may_v be_v in_o their_o particular_n but_o there_o be_v world_n of_o eye-witness_n and_o hand-witness_n and_o tongue-witness_n and_o nose-witness_n and_o ear-witness_n of_o father_n and_o son_n who_o all_o unanimous_o concur_v discern_v and_o say_v of_o what_o they_o have_v see_v feel_v hear_v taste_v smell_v that_o there_o be_v no_o flesh_n nor_o blood_n but_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o consecrate_a host_n therefore_o the_o report_n that_o there_o be_v no_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n or_o consecrate_a host_n and_o consequent_o no_o transubstantiation_n be_v altogether_o infallible_a so_o inconsistent_a be_v this_o author_n saying_n in_o one_o place_n with_o that_o he_o say_v in_o another_o as_o indeed_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v a_o lie_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v self-repugnant_a sect_n iii_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o deliver_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o receive_v prove_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n h._n t._n proceed_v thus_o a_o three_o argument_n if_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n together_o with_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n this_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o nothing_o on_o pain_n of_o damnation_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v for_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o as_o such_o then_o be_v be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v deliver_v any_o thing_n for_o faith_n to_o the_o second_o age_n but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o as_o such_o and_o so_o from_o age_n to_o age_n to_o this_o time_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n together_o with_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n this_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o nothing_o on_o pain_n of_o damnation_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v for_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o receive_v from_o they_o as_o such_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n shall_v deliver_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o second_o age_n for_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o such_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o consequent_o that_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v because_o to_o make_v she_o deliver_v more_o for_o faith_n than_o she_o have_v receive_v in_o this_o supposition_n the_o whole_a church_n must_v either_o have_v forget_v what_o she_o have_v be_v teach_v from_o her_o infancy_n in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n and_o damnation_n which_o be_v impossible_a in_o a_o world_n of_o ear_n and_o eye-witness_n as_o have_v be_v show_v or_o else_o the_o whole_a church_n must_v have_v so_o far_o break_v with_o reason_n which_o be_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o man_n as_o to_o conspire_v in_o a_o notorious_a lie_n to_o damn_v herself_o and_o posterity_n by_o say_v she_o have_v receive_v such_o or_o such_o a_o point_n for_o faith_n which_o in_o she_o own_o conscience_n she_o know_v she_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o this_o be_v more_o impossible_a than_o the_o former_a even_o as_o impossible_a as_o for_o man_n not_o to_o be_v man_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o next_o argument_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o these_o positive_a text_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o brethren_n stand_v you_o fast_o and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o our_o epistle_n 2_o thess_n 2._o 15._o those_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o hear_v and_o see_v in_o i_o these_o do_v you_o phil._n 4._o so_o we_o have_v preach_v and_o so_o you_o have_v believe_v 1_o cor._n 14._o 15._o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n rom._n 10._o 17._o the_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o before_o many_o witness_n the_o same_o commend_v thou_o to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v fit_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o if_o any_o man_n shall_v preach_v otherwise_o than_o you_o have_v receive_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n gal._n 1._o 9_o although_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v to_o you_o beside_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v to_o you_o be_v he_o anathema_n gal._n 1._o 8._o answ_n 1._o the_o conclusion_n be_v it_o grant_v be_v not_o the_o position_n to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v apostolical_a oral_a tradition_n not_o book_n nor_o be_v it_o include_v in_o it_o since_o some_o in_o the_o church_n although_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n may_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o second_o age_n and_o so_o from_o father_n to_o son_n that_o for_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o receive_v from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v after_o receive_v as_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o report_n of_o keep_v easter_n on_o the_o fourteen_o of_o the_o moon_n of_o the_o millenary_a opinion_n as_o from_o john_n and_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o whole_a church_n may_v mistake_v or_o forget_v not_o deliver_v all_o truth_n yea_o may_v err_v and_o so_o not_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o be_v it_o grant_v that_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n to_o the_o second_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o romanist_n tradition_n unwritten_a prove_v rule_n of_o faith_n unless_o they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o second_o age_n and_o so_o from_o father_n to_o son_n without_o alteration_n which_o they_o can_v prove_v nevertheless_o since_o this_o argument_n tend_v to_o the_o assert_v of_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n distinct_o take_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o write_n i_o grant_v the_o minor_a and_o omit_v the_o examine_n of_o the_o text_n bring_v to_o prove_v it_o though_o some_o of_o they_o yield_v a_o good_a argument_n against_o unwritten_a tradition_n but_o i_o deny_v the_o major_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o experience_n both_o in_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o who_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o add_v to_o or_o diminish_v from_o god_n command_n deut._n 4._o 2._o and_o yet_o they_o do_v mark_v 7._o 8._o 9_o and_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o chiliast_n about_o easter_n and_o sundry_a other_o thing_n and_o though_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n do_v not_o deliver_v point_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o second_o age_n yet_o in_o the_o second_o and_o after-age_n corruption_n do_v come_v in_o which_o be_v take_v for_o universal_a tradition_n as_o in_o give_v infant_n the_o eucharist_n which_o augustine_n and_o pope_n innocentius_n take_v for_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n though_o the_o trent_n council_n condemn_v it_o and_o many_o thing_n there_o be_v now_o take_v for_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o worship_n of_o image_n pray_v to_o saint_n not_o allow_v the_o wine_n to_o be_v drink_v by_o all_o the_o communicant_n which_o yet_o be_v manifest_o repugnant_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n as_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o h._n t._n i_o say_v 1._o the_o eye_n and_o ear-witness_n of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o whole_a world_n 2._o error_n may_v be_v traduce_v as_o from_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n and_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o from_o they_o 3._o the_o church_n deliver_v not_o doctrine_n but_o the_o teacher_n in_o they_o whereof_o many_o sometime_o be_v hypocrite_n sometime_o weak_a in_o understanding_n all_o of_o they_o be_v man_n be_v liable_a to_o mistake_n passion_n forgetfulness_n inadvertency_n and_o those_o that_o be_v not_o sincere_a may_v against_o their_o conscience_n deliver_v error_n sure_o if_o polycarpus_n a_o auditor_n of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n and_o anicetus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o second_o age_n polycrates_n and_o pope_n victor_n in_o the_o same_o age_n cyprian_a and_o pope_n stephanus_n in_o the_o next_o contradict_v each_o other_o about_o tradition_n no_o marvel_n late_a and_o inferior_a teacher_n such_o as_o papias_n a_o credulous_a man_n and_o other_o mistake_v about_o they_o and_o the_o after_o church_n follow_v they_o in_o their_o mistake_n 4._o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n easy_o draw_v away_o from_o the_o doctrine_n which_o paul_n have_v evident_o teach_v they_o by_o harken_v to_o seducer_n as_o the_o galatian_n gal._n 3._o 1._o though_o the_o
their_o faith_n and_o prepossess_v they_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a age_n which_o once_o receive_v very_o few_o except_o man_n very_o learned_a and_o impartial_a inquisitour_n into_o the_o truth_n will_v be_v able_a to_o examine_v and_o in_o effect_n that_o which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n have_v or_o shall_v determine_v must_v be_v take_v for_o unquestionable_a nor_o be_v this_o reasonable_a but_o against_o all_o right_a way_n of_o understanding_n that_o we_o shall_v apply_v ourselves_o to_o know_v what_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o rather_o by_o the_o present_a and_o precedent_a age_n after_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o live_v than_o by_o their_o own_o writing_n as_o if_o a_o man_n may_v better_o know_v what_o legacy_n his_o great_a grandfather_n ●ave_n a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n now_o live_v than_o by_o his_o ●wn_n will_v upon_o record_n 2._o the_o pretence_n for_o this_o resolution_n be_v but_o imaginary_a and_o fictitious_a and_o refute_v by_o experience_n sure_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o impossibility_n as_o this_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v as_o it_o be_v in_o noa●'s_n and_o abraham_n day_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o elias_n manasseh_n our_o lord_n christ_n at_o his_o come_n in_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n when_o as_o hierom_n say_v the_o whole_a world_n groan_v that_o it_o be_v become_v arian_n there_o will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o fall_v away_o as_o the_o apostle_n foretell_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 1._o 2._o thess_n 2_o 4_o at_o which_o time_n the_o rhemist_n grant_v in_o their_o note_n on_o that_o place_n that_o even_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v suppress_v and_o therefore_o the_o impossibility_n here_o suppose_v by_o h._n t._n be_v but_o imaginary_a out_o of_o inadverteney_n of_o what_o the_o scripture_n have_v relate_v and_o foretell_v and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o great_a corruption_n of_o man_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o old_a serpent_n call_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n which_o deceive_v the_o whole_a world_n revel_v 12._o 9_o 3._o but_o what_o church_n be_v there_o that_o so_o resolve_v her_o faith_n none_o that_o i_o know_v of_o beside_o the_o roman_a or_o rather_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o i_o do_v not_o yet_o think_v that_o either_o the_o greek_a asiatic_a or_o african_a church_n do_v so_o resolve_v their_o faith_n no_o nor_o yet_o some_o of_o those_o church_n who_o do_v hold_v communion_n with_o the_o roman_a see_v nay_o i_o hardly_o think_v the_o church_n or_o court_n of_o rome_n itself_o do_v resolve_v its_o faith_n such_o as_o it_o be_v as_o h._n t._n here_o speak_v i_o instance_n in_o one_o main_a point_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n for_o sure_o if_o that_o be_v their_o resolution_n they_o will_v be_v cast_v since_o the_o precedent_a age_n i_o mean_v the_o fifteen_o century_n do_v deliver_v by_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o father_n to_o son_n that_o a_o general_a council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o two_o so_o term_v general_a council_n of_o basil_n and_o constance_n do_v express_o determine_v and_o in_o other_o point_n in_o difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o papist_n if_o they_o go_v from_o age_n to_o age_n upward_o papist_n will_v find_v themselves_o destitute_a of_o tradition_n unwritten_a as_o well_o as_o write_v in_o the_o half_a communion_n papal_a indulgence_n worship_n of_o image_n and_o many_o more_o beside_o so_o that_o however_o this_o author_n pretend_v tradition_n of_o a_o world_n of_o father_n to_o a_o world_n of_o son_n when_o he_o and_o his_o party_n be_v put_v to_o it_o they_o have_v not_o any_o ancient_a universal_a tradition_n elder_a than_o the_o sixteen_o century_n for_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o infallibility_n and_o therein_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pack_v council_n of_o trent_n be_v the_o great_a world_n he_o mean_v at_o which_o be_v at_o some_o determination_n of_o great_a moment_n about_o fifty_o bishop_n such_o as_o they_o be_v and_o some_o of_o they_o but_o titular_a and_o in_o other_o point_n there_o have_v be_v no_o tradition_n but_o what_o have_v be_v gainsay_v and_o therefore_o in_o fine_a the_o papist_n faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o trent_n determination_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n with_o papist_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n of_o this_o author_n here_o p._n 70._o where_o he_o make_v the_o church_n which_o he_o count_v infallible_a a_o council_n call_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o judge_v the_o trent_n council_n to_o be_v pag._n 76._o and_o if_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v resolve_v its_o faith_n into_o the_o catholic_a church_n tradition_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o resolve_v its_o faith_n into_o its_o own_o tradition_n at_o least_o the_o catholic_a church_n represent_v in_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n must_v resolve_v its_o faith_n into_o itself_o pius_n the_o four_o and_o the_o trent_n bishop_n must_v resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o their_o own_o tradition_n and_o so_o must_v believe_v what_o they_o believe_v in_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n because_o they_o hold_v so_o and_o judge_v themselves_o infallible_a and_o if_o so_o it_o will_v be_v know_v whether_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o same_o thing_n before_o they_o do_v determine_v they_o in_o a_o council_n if_o not_o they_o define_v what_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v if_o they_o do_v than_o it_o will_v be_v know_v upon_o what_o tradition_n they_o do_v believe_v they_o if_o they_o name_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o forego_n age_n the_o same_o question_n will_v be_v put_v and_o the_o answer_n must_v be_v either_o at_o last_o to_o resolve_v it_o into_o scripture_n or_o some_o fallible_a man_n or_o the_o process_n will_v be_v endless_a or_o it_o must_v rest_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_a proper_o so_o call_v or_o general_a council_n or_o pope_n or_o else_o the_o question_n will_v return_v and_o the_o argue_v will_v be_v circular_a yet_o there_o be_v these_o reason_n why_o papist_n make_v show_v of_o this_o way_n of_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n tradition_n unwritten_a 1._o because_o they_o will_v not_o have_v their_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n try_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o nor_o in_o the_o first_o place_n nor_o by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n 2._o because_o they_o know_v that_o few_o either_o of_o the_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a can_v tract_n they_o in_o this_o way_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o but_o man_n of_o very_a great_a read_n and_o very_o accurate_a critic_n to_o discern_v truth_n in_o this_o way_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o nation_n in_o which_o the_o church_n have_v be_v whereof_o some_o be_v unknown_a to_o some_o other_o church_n the_o impossibility_n to_o know_v what_o each_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n hold_v in_o every_o age_n the_o difficulty_n of_o travel_n the_o variety_n of_o language_n the_o multitude_n and_o uncertainty_n of_o author_n especial_o since_o they_o have_v be_v geld_v and_o alter_v by_o the_o indices_fw-la expurgatorii_fw-la and_o practice_n of_o monk_n and_o other_o scribe_n the_o foist_v in_o bastard_n treatise_n under_o the_o name_n of_o approve_a author_n for_o which_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o they_o decline_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v trial_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o scripture_n pretend_v difficulty_n where_o there_o be_v either_o none_o or_o such_o as_o may_v be_v remove_v though_o by_o their_o course_n they_o cast_v man_n into_o insuperable_a difficulty_n and_o when_o they_o be_v necessitate_v to_o let_v people_n have_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n by_o reason_n of_o importunity_n of_o adversary_n yet_o they_o so_o pervert_v it_o by_o corrupt_a translation_n and_o note_n as_o in_o the_o rhemist_n testament_n be_v manifest_a that_o people_n have_v much_o ado_n without_o much_o diligence_n to_o find_v out_o their_o deceit_n sect_n v._o the_o romanist_n can_v never_o gain_v their_o cause_n by_o refer_v the_o whole_a trial_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o scripture_n but_o will_v be_v prove_v by_o it_o to_o have_v revolt_v from_o christianity_n yet_o h._n t._n have_v the_o face_n to_o say_v but_o if_o we_o refer_v the_o whole_a trial_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o scripture_n i_o see_v nothing_o more_o evident_a than_o that_o this_o one_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la give_v the_o cause_n into_o our_o hand_n since_o it_o clear_o prove_v either_o many_o controvert_v catholic_n doctrine_n be_v sufficient_o contain_v in_o
father_n to_o son_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr decret_a council_n niceni_n since_o that_o delivery_n be_v according_a to_o he_o by_o scripture_n chrysostom_n on_o 2_o thess_n 2._o 15._o say_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o writing_n but_o many_o thing_n without_o and_o these_o be_v worthy_a of_o credit_n as_o the_o other_o but_o do_v not_o say_v there_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o church_n tradition_n unwritten_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v different_a from_o the_o write_v and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n yea_o homily_n in_o 2_o tim._n 3._o 15_o 16._o he_o determine_v all_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v from_o scripture_n and_o the_o same_o answer_n may_v serve_v for_o the_o word_n of_o epiphanius_n haeresi_fw-la 61._o the_o word_n of_o augustine_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr bapt._n cap._n 23._o be_v about_o a_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o cyprian_a and_o pope_n stephanus_n in_o which_o both_o side_n pretend_v tradition_n cyprian_a for_o rebaptization_n and_o here_o augustine_n pretend_v tradition_n for_o the_o contrary_a by_o which_o and_o by_o augustine_n word_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la pecc_fw-la merit_n &_o remiss_a cap._n 24._o in_o which_o he_o make_v the_o give_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o infant_n a_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o pope_n innocentius_n epist_n 93._o among_o augustine_n epistle_n determine_v to_o be_v necessary_a yet_o be_v now_o condemn_v in_o the_o trent_n council_n it_o be_v apparent_a how_o unsafe_a it_o be_v to_o rely_v on_o a_o pope_n determination_n or_o augustine_n opinion_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o that_o gross_a error_n have_v be_v receive_v under_o the_o name_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o for_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a act_n 7._o anno_fw-la dom._n 781._o it_o be_v a_o late_a and_o a_o impious_a council_n condemn_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o francford_n and_o at_o paris_n for_o their_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o worship_v image_n and_o therefore_o we_o count_v its_o speech_n not_o worthy_a to_o be_v answer_v but_o with_o detestation_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n to_o be_v move_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n at_o sens_n in_o france_n which_o be_v late_a and_o but_o provincial_n sect_n vii_o objection_n from_o scripture_n for_o its_o sufficiency_n without_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v vindicate_v from_o h._n t._n his_o answer_n h._n t._n proceed_v thus_o objection_n solve_v object_n you_o have_v make_v frustrate_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o your_o tradition_n st._n matth._n cap._n 15._o v._n 4._o beware_v lest_o any_o man_n deceive_v you_o by_o vain_a fallacy_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n col._n 2._o answ_n these_o text_n be_v both_o against_o the_o vain_a tradition_n of_o private_a man_n not_o against_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o reply_v they_o be_v against_o the_o popish_a unwritten_a tradition_n which_o be_v false_o call_v apostolical_a which_o be_v indeed_o the_o mere_a invention_n of_o man_n either_o devise_v by_o superstitious_a prelate_n priest_n monk_n or_o people_n or_o upon_o uncertain_a report_n receive_v by_o credulous_a people_n as_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o tradition_n about_o easter_n lent_n fast_o christ_n age_n and_o many_o more_o show_v and_o in_o such_o kind_n of_o man_n invention_n do_v almost_o all_o the_o popish_a worship_n and_o service_n consist_v which_o cause_v break_v the_o command_n of_o god_n to_o observe_v man_n tradition_n as_o be_v manifest_a in_o monkish_a vow_n whereby_o honour_v of_o parent_n be_v make_v void_a and_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n whereby_o the_o express_a command_n of_o christ_n be_v evacuate_v object_n there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n to_o decide_v controversy_n than_o by_o scripture_n answ_n than_o by_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o grant_v than_o by_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o dead_a letter_n or_o expound_v by_o the_o private_a spirit_n i_o deny_v for_o so_o as_o tertullian_n say_v there_o be_v no_o good_a get_v by_o dispute_v out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o either_o to_o make_v a_o man_n sick_a or_o mad_a de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 19_o i_o reply_v it_o be_v well_o this_o man_n will_v grant_v there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n to_o decide_v controversy_n than_o by_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n than_o knot_n be_v reason_n for_o a_o live_a judge_n against_o dr._n potter_n come_v to_o nothing_o we_o desire_v no_o other_o than_o to_o have_v our_o controversy_n decide_v this_o way_n reject_v any_o one_o infallible_a judge_n that_o shall_v take_v on_o he_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v to_o prescribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n how_o they_o shall_v understand_v the_o scripture_n the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o company_n of_o believer_n who_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o papist_n own_a definition_n have_v the_o help_n of_o their_o godly_a and_o learned_a guide_n may_v expound_v the_o scripture_n any_o where_o in_o the_o world_n at_o geneva_n london_n dort_n and_o other_o place_n as_o well_o and_o better_a than_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n or_o a_o council_n of_o canonist_n titular_a bishop_n swear_a vassal_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o never_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sophistical_a schoolman_n at_o trent_n and_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n we_o like_v it_o well_o to_o expound_v scripture_n by_o it_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n as_o austin_n teach_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr doctr_n christ_n cap._n 2._o 35._o 37._o 40._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 8._o 9_o 11._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 2_o 3._o 5._o 10._o 17._o 18._o 27._o 28._o lib_n 4._o cap._n 3._o as_o the_o word_n be_v cite_v and_o vindicate_v from_o heart_n reply_v by_o dr._n john_n rainoll_n confer_v with_o hart._n chap_n 2._o divis_fw-la 2._o nor_o do_v i_o know_v any_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o expound_v scripture_n by_o for_o decide_v controversy_n but_o their_o epistle_n and_o other_o write_n if_o h._n t._n can_v show_n i_o any_o such_o to_o expound_v they_o by_o let_v he_o produce_v they_o and_o i_o will_v embrace_v they_o sure_o i_o be_o pope_n exposition_n and_o popish_a council_n canon_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o the_o most_o ridiculous_a profane_a and_o blaphemous_a perverting_n of_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o sober_a man_n use_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o canon_n law_n yea_o the_o very_a council_n of_o trent_n have_v absurd_o abuse_v scripture_n as_o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a by_o go_v over_o their_o canon_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o roman_a catechism_n what_o h._n t._n mean_n by_o the_o dead_a letter_n i_o understand_v not_o unless_o he_o mean_v the_o literal_a sense_n which_o sure_a bellarmine_n and_o other_o allow_v for_o one_o sense_n and_o that_o most_o genuine_a and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o why_o do_v the_o trent_n council_n decree_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n not_o to_o be_v refuse_v why_o do_v cajetan_n arias_n montanus_n the_o rhemist_n and_o many_o more_o translate_v and_o expound_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n be_v the_o scripture_n any_o more_o a_o dead_a letter_n than_o the_o pope_n breves_fw-la or_o trent_n canon_n be_v they_o any_o more_o a_o live_a judge_n than_o the_o scripture_n pope_n pius_n the_o four_o tie_v papist_n to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v except_o in_o very_a few_o thing_n a_o mere_a nullity_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o reality_n impossible_a to_o be_v do_v yet_o however_o can_v it_o be_v do_v the_o exposition_n must_v be_v by_o a_o dead_a letter_n in_o h._n t._n his_o sense_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n but_o how_o intolerable_a be_v it_o that_o such_o a_o wretch_n as_o h._n t._n shall_v thus_o blasphemous_o call_v that_o a_o dead_a letter_n which_o stephen_n call_v live_v oracle_n act_n 7._o 38._o paul_n the_o word_n of_o life_n phil._n 2._o 16._o it_o be_v true_a for_o pope_n of_o who_o some_o if_o alphonsus_n a_o cast●●_n lib._n 1._o advers._fw-la haeret._n cap._n 1._o say_v true_a be_v so_o unlearned_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v grammar_n it_o be_v desirable_a that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n since_o they_o be_v unable_a to_o do_v it_o that_o they_o may_v vent_v their_o illiterate_a foppery_n under_o pretence_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n of_o which_o sort_n many_o of_o their_o decree_n be_v in_o their_o canon_n law_n but_o i_o think_v all_o the_o learned_a romanist_n even_o the_o jesuit_n themselves_o
of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o pope_n or_o ecumenical_a council_n infallibility_n 88_o 4._o none_o of_o these_o text_n matth._n 28._o 20._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o matth._n 16._o 18._o john_n 14_o 26._o john_n 16._o 13._o act_n 15._o 28._o do_v prove_v the_o infallibility_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n or_o roman_a church_n or_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_a council_n approve_v by_o he_o 90_o 5._o there_o may_v be_v good_a assurance_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o its_o meaning_n and_o of_o our_o salvation_n without_o suppose_v the_o church_n infallibility_n 93_o 6._o neither_o can_v the_o church_n oblige_v man_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v her_o definition_n of_o faith_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o such_o judicature_n as_o h._n t._n assert_n to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o she_o nor_o do_v any_o of_o the_o father_n word_n cite_v by_o h._n t._n say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 3._o august_n contr_n epist_n fundam_fw-la cap._n 5._o etc._n etc._n be_v show_v not_o to_o be_v for_o it_o but_o some_o of_o they_o plain_o against_o it_o 97_o 7._o the_o objection_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n against_o the_o infallibility_n which_o h._n t._n ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n be_v make_v good_a against_o his_o answer_n 106_o 8._o the_o objection_n of_o protestant_n against_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o father_n and_o council_n be_v vindicate_v from_o h._n t._n his_o answer_n 124_o article_n vi_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o her_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n 131_o sect._n 1._o the_o text_n bring_v by_o h._n t._n to_o prove_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v by_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n be_v show_v to_o be_v impertinent_a ibid._n 2._o the_o sanctity_n of_o man_n in_o former_a age_n prove_v not_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 132_o 3._o the_o imagine_a holiness_n of_o benedict_n augustine_n francis_n dominick_n prove_v not_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n 134_o 4._o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o holiness_n of_o its_o doctrine_n but_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a 136_o 5._o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o romanist_n show_v not_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n will-worship_n and_o pharisaical_a hypocrisy_n 139_o 6._o the_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n be_v no_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 143_o 7._o the_o popish_a pretend_a miracle_n prove_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o church_n nor_o the_o miracle_n relate_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n 144_o 8._o the_o objection_n against_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n be_v not_o solve_v by_o h._n t._n 147_o article_n vii_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supremacy_n or_o headship_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o prove_v by_o h._n t._n 151_o sect._n 1._o neither_o be_v it_o prove_v nor_o probable_a that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o he_o be_v to_o have_v a_o successor_n ibid._n 2._o from_o be_v the_o foundation_n matth._n 16._o 18._o and_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n john_n 21._o 16_o 17._o neither_o peter_n nor_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v prove_v 152_o 3._o the_o text_n matth._n 16._o 18._o prove_v not_o any_o rule_n or_o dominion_n in_o peter_n over_o the_o apostle_n but_o a_o promise_n of_o special_a success_n in_o his_o preach_v 156_o 4._o john_n 21._o 16_o 17_o 18._o prove_v not_o peter_n supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n 159_o 5._o peter_n charge_n to_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n luke_n 22._o 31._o and_o his_o priority_n of_o nomination_n prove_v not_o his_o supremacy_n 161_o 6._o the_o late_a pope_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o successor_n of_o peter_n 164_o 7._o the_o say_n of_o father_n and_o council_n prove_v not_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 165_o 8._o the_o holy_a scripture_n john_n 19_o 11._o act_n 25._o 10_o 11._o luke_n 22._o 25._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o overthrow_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n 169_o 9_o cyprian_a hierome_n gregory_n the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n chalcedon_n nice_n be_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 176_o 10._o of_o the_o emperor_n call_v council_n pope_n joan_n papist_n kill_v prince_n excommunicate_a not_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n 18●_n article_n viii_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o h._n t._n term_n apostolical_a be_v not_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n 187_o sect._n 1._o the_o argument_n for_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o mean_n of_o plant_v and_o conserve_n faith_n at_o first_o be_v answer_v ibid._n 2._o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o assurance_n thereby_o of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o book_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 190_o 3._o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o deliver_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o receive_v prove_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n 191_o 4._o counterfeit_v even_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n may_v and_o do_v come_v into_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n without_o such_o a_o force_n as_o h._n t._n imagine_v necessary_a thereto_o 195_o 5._o the_o romanist_n can_v never_o gain_v their_o cause_n by_o refer_v the_o whole_a trial_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o scripture_n but_o will_v be_v prove_v by_o it_o to_o have_v revolt_v from_o christianity_n 198_o 6._o say_n of_o father_n and_o council_n prove_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n 202_o 7._o objection_n from_o scripture_n for_o its_o sufficiency_n without_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v vindicate_v from_o h._n t._n his_o answer_n 205_o 8._o h._n t._n solve_v not_o the_o objection_n from_o reason_n for_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n without_o unwritten_a tradition_n 212_o article_n ix_o protestant's_n in_o not_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o now_o it_o be_v in_o their_o worship_n in_o not_o subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o their_o visible_a head_n in_o deny_v the_o new_a article_n of_o the_o tridentin_n council_n and_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o his_o bull_n be_v neither_o guilty_a of_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n but_o papist_n by_o eject_v they_o for_o this_o cause_n and_o seek_v to_o impose_v on_o they_o this_o subjection_n be_v true_o schismatic_n and_o in_o hold_v the_o article_n which_o now_o they_o do_v be_v heretic_n 220_o sect._n 1._o h._n t._n his_o definition_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v not_o right_a ibid._n 2._o protestant_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v sectary_n by_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o reformation_n 221_o 3._o the_o say_n of_o father_n prove_v not_o protestant_n heretic_n or_o schismatic_n 224_o 4._o h._n t._n have_v not_o solve_v the_o objection_n acquit_v protestant_n from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o condemn_v papist_n 226_o finis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la luscipit_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la seu_fw-la cujus_fw-la fides_fw-la sundatur_fw-la authoritate_fw-la christi_fw-la thomas_n whitsonus_n bucci_n tract_n 1._o sect._n 7._o watson_n quodlib_a p._n 252_o 260_o 343._o
they_o late_a than_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a even_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o be_v oppose_v more_o or_o less_o at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o by_o a_o considerable_a party_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v far_o better_a christian_n than_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a clergy_n which_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v they_o as_o heretic_n from_o which_o crime_n we_o be_v able_a to_o acquit_v ourselves_o other_o way_n than_o h._n t._n say_v we_o can_v chief_o by_o show_v the_o agreement_n of_o our_o doctrine_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o first_o church_n after_o christ_n ascension_n and_o the_o orthodox_n teacher_n in_o they_o as_o will_v appear_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o nine_o article_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a frontless_a impudence_n in_o he_o to_o charge_v we_o with_o any_o blasphemous_a evasion_n or_o exclude_v ourselves_o from_o all_o possible_a assurance_n of_o faith_n or_o salvation_n and_o to_o arrogate_v to_o himself_o as_o if_o he_o have_v prove_v either_o the_o reformation_n which_o be_v begin_v 1517._o by_o luther_n and_o after_o by_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o continue_v have_v be_v bless_v by_o god_n notwithstanding_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o papal_a party_n and_o the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n and_o the_o reformation_n seek_v in_o england_n since_o 1641._o have_v be_v bless_v notwithstanding_o the_o trouble_n and_o difference_n foment_v by_o the_o popish_a and_o prelatical_a party_n as_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o preacher_n be_v notwithstanding_o the_o persecution_n heresy_n and_o schism_n that_o follow_v it_o notwithstanding_o what_o h._n t._n or_o any_o other_o romanist_n have_v say_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o pope_n have_v not_o prove_v infallible_a but_o may_v be_v prove_v and_o have_v be_v false_a and_o heretical_a which_o be_v in_o part_n prove_v by_o the_o objection_n follow_v sect_n vii_o the_o objection_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n against_o the_o infallibility_n which_o h._n t._n ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n be_v make_v good_a against_o his_o answer_n h._n t._n say_v thus_o objection_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n solve_v object_n all_o the_o israelite_n adore_v the_o golden_a ●alf_n therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n err_v answ_n moses_n and_o the_o levite_n do_v not_o who_o be_v many_o thousand_o exod._n 32._o numb_a 3._o 39_o therefore_o both_o those_o proposition_n be_v false_a to_o which_o i_o reply_v that_o whereas_o the_o romanist_n do_v allege_v to_o prove_v a_o universal_a bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o by_o himself_o or_o with_o a_o council_n be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n god_n ordinance_n of_o one_o high_a priest_n in_o israel_n to_o who_o judgement_n all_o must_v stand_v deut._n 17._o as_o bellarmine_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 4._o etc._n etc._n do_v this_o argument_n be_v retort_v thus_o if_o aaron_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v not_o infallible_a then_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o universal_a bishop_n over_o christian_n as_o there_o be_v over_o the_o israelite_n and_o such_o a_o council_n as_o the_o jewish_a synedrium_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n as_o romanist_n will_v have_v yet_o they_o may_v be_v fallible_a since_o the_o jewish_a high_a priest_n and_o council_n who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n be_v not_o infallible_a though_o they_o be_v as_o much_o privilege_v by_o papist_n own_v arguing_n who_o infer_v their_o sovereign_a infallible_a judicature_n of_o controversy_n which_o they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n from_o the_o jewish_a high_a priest_n and_o his_o council_n but_o aaron_n and_o the_o jewish_a council_n and_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a for_o aaron_n and_o the_o council_n and_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v err_v as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o make_v the_o golden_a calf_n and_o the_o people_n motion_n and_o concurrence_n thereto_o now_o though_o moses_n and_o the_o levite_n do_v not_o err_v yet_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o people_n do_v from_o who_o privilege_n and_o not_o from_o moses_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n the_o infallible_a judicature_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o universal_a bishop_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_n be_v fetch_v and_o therefore_o the_o answer_n avoid_v not_o the_o objection_n h._n t._n add_v object_n the_o jew_n council_n err_v in_o condemn_v christ_n answ_n no_o wonder_v it_o be_v not_o perfect_o ecumenical_a for_o christ_n himself_o be_v then_o head_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o high_a authority_n be_v in_o he_o not_o in_o the_o jew_n council_n and_o if_o the_o jew_n church_n can_v err_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v for_o it_o be_v build_v as_o st._n paul_n say_v on_o better_a promise_n i_o reply_v 1._o this_o answer_n which_o make_v that_o council_n not_o perfect_o ecumenical_a and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n it_o err_v plain_o intimate_v that_o if_o a_o council_n be_v nor_o perfect_o ecumenical_a though_o it_o will_v be_v otherwise_o infallible_a yet_o in_o that_o case_n it_o may_v err_v whence_o it_o will_v follow_v unless_o the_o papist_n can_v prove_v their_o council_n which_o they_o say_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v perfect_o ecumenical_a that_o be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n they_o be_v not_o infallible_a now_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o neither_o the_o trent_n nor_o the_o lateran_n council_n nor_o those_o of_o constance_n basil_n florence_n nor_o any_o other_o council_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n last_o pass_v have_v be_v so_o call_v yea_o sometime_o one_o party_n have_v keep_v a_o council_n in_o opposition_n to_o another_o and_o pope_n against_o pope_n and_o from_o the_o trent_n council_n to_o which_o they_o adhere_v not_o only_o the_o greek_a and_o asiatick_n and_o african_a church_n be_v whole_o absent_a but_o also_o the_o french_a for_o a_o time_n and_o the_o council_n consist_v in_o effect_n of_o none_o but_o italian_n and_o the_o pope_n hireling_n some_o of_o who_o be_v only_o titular_a bishop_n have_v never_o be_v at_o the_o place_n whereof_o they_o carry_v the_o title_n and_o these_o by_o the_o plurality_n of_o voice_n serve_v the_o pope_n end_n but_o in_o nothing_o either_o serious_o seek_v the_o truth_n or_o reformation_n of_o corruption_n as_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n write_v by_o that_o intelligent_a man_n friar_n paul_n of_o v●nice_n have_v clear_v to_o the_o world_n by_o which_o be_v it_o not_o that_o papist_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o hoodwink_a themselves_o they_o may_v see_v how_o mere_a a_o cheat_n that_o council_n be_v and_o how_o just_o it_o be_v refuse_v by_o the_o french_a papist_n themselves_o unto_o this_o day_n 2_o though_o christ_n be_v then_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n among_o the_o jew_n not_o act_n but_o as_o prophet_n to_o his_o disciple_n he_o do_v not_o deny_v subjection_n to_o the_o priest_n he_o be_v circumcise_v the_o eight_o day_n as_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n present_v at_o the_o temple_n with_o a_o offer_n go_v up_o to_o the_o feast_n keep_v the_o passover_n deny_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n yea_o direct_v the_o leper_n to_o offer_v to_o the_o priest_n for_o his_o cleanse_n as_o moses_n bid_v he_o and_o john_n note_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o that_o he_o be_v high_a priest_n that_o year_n prophesy_v of_o christ_n death_n john_n 11._o 51._o which_o be_v sufficient_a proof_n that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o christ_n be_v on_o earth_n but_o sure_o than_o they_o do_v err_v and_o therefore_o be_v not_o at_o all_o infallible_a in_o their_o ordinary_a determination_n 3._o it_o follow_v if_o the_o jew_n church_n can_v err_v notwithstanding_o those_o passage_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o the_o papist_n bring_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n infallibility_n from_o their_o infallibility_n than_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n infallibility_n be_v not_o well_o prove_v thence_o 4._o st._n paul_n do_v not_o say_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v on_o better_a promise_n than_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o the_o second_o covenant_n be_v make_v a_o law_n on_o better_a promise_n than_o the_o first_o be_v say_v heb._n 8._o 6._o but_o those_o promise_n be_v set_v down_o vers_n 10_o 11_o 12._o of_o that_o chapter_n of_o which_o there_o be_v none_o concern_v any_o much_o less_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o infallibility_n in_o any_o chief_a bishop_n on_o earth_n ecumenical_a council_n or_o church_n of_o christian_n above_o the_o jewish_a high_a priest_n and_o council_n and_o therefore_o
be_v manifest_a that_o he_o make_v ro●●_n no_o more_o infallible_a than_o the_o church_n at_o smyrna_n or_o ephesus_n refer_v the_o inquisitor_n into_o the_o tradition_n apostolical_a to_o apply_v himself_o to_o these_o as_o well_o as_o it_o for_o information_n nor_o do_v he_o make_v the_o resort_n to_o be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n always_o but_o because_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o man_n that_o know_v the_o apostle_n or_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n deliver_v from_o they_o among_o who_o he_o reckon_v linus_n as_o make_v bishop_n by_o peter_n while_o he_o live_v and_o so_o no_o successor_n to_o peter_n but_o if_o peter_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o papist_n say_v but_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v two_o bishop_n of_o rome_n together_o yea_o he_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v found_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n not_o by_o peter_n only_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o tradition_n though_o either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a he_o judge_v there_o be_v the_o best_a assurance_n to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n about_o god_n the_o creator_n against_o valentinus_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o teacher_n there_o as_o he_o have_v be_v with_o polycarpus_n of_o smyrna_n who_o be_v a_o acquaintance_n of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n for_o which_o reason_n he_o direct_v also_o to_o he_o as_o for_o the_o more_o potent_a principality_n which_o irenaus_n speak_v of_o whether_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a it_o be_v uncertain_a if_o of_o the_o civil_a principality_n because_o than_o it_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o necessity_n of_o resort_n thither_o must_v be_v because_o civil_a affair_n will_v enforce_v they_o to_o go_v thither_o upon_o other_o occasion_n and_o then_o they_o may_v inform_v themselves_o be_v there_o most_o commodious_o if_o of_o ecclesiastical_a principality_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o show_v it_o mean_v of_o universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o power_n over_o all_o church_n but_o of_o a_o more_o powerful_a principality_n it_o have_v in_o clear_v doctrine_n and_o order_v church-affair_n in_o those_o part_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o eminency_n of_o their_o founder_n and_o succeed_a teacher_n who_o be_v in_o those_o time_n of_o great_a note_n for_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n for_o which_o they_o be_v martyr_n and_o indeed_o be_v the_o question_n now_o between_o we_o and_o any_o such_o as_o valentinus_n or_o martion_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v about_o another_o god_n beside_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v such_o bishop_n as_o then_o they_o have_v who_o have_v acquaintance_n with_o the_o apostle_n or_o receive_v their_o tradition_n from_o they_o so_o near_o to_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v then_o we_o shall_v also_o think_v it_o meet_v in_o such_o a_o point_n wherein_o we_o know_v they_o be_v right_a to_o refer_v it_o to_o they_o to_o determine_v but_o in_o so_o do_v we_o shall_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o perpetual_a prerogative_n of_o infallible_a supremacy_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n annex_v to_o that_o see_v nor_o do_v ever_o irenaeus_n intend_v it_o who_o be_v know_v to_o have_v oppose_v victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_a bishop_n for_o vary_v from_o he_o in_o the_o keep_n of_o easter_n as_o eusebius_n report_v hist_o eccles_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 22_o 23_o 24._o the_o word_n of_o origen_n in_o cap._n 6._o epist_n ad_fw-la roman_n wave_v other_o exception_n against_o citation_n out_o of_o that_o commentary_n as_o be_v so_o alter_v by_o ruffinus_n that_o we_o can_v hardly_o know_v what_o be_v origen_n what_o not_o be_v they_o as_o h._n t._n set_v they_o down_o which_o i_o can_v examine_v now_o for_o want_n of_o the_o book_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o peter_n supremacy_n of_o power_n over_o the_o apostle_n he_o may_v have_v the_o chief_a charge_n of_o feed_v christ_n be_v sheep_n and_o the_o church_n be_v found_v on_o he_o yet_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n be_v found_v on_o the_o other_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o on_o he_o as_o have_v be_v show_v before_o in_o this_o article_n sect_n 4._o as_o for_o cyprian_n word_n call_v peter_n the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n cite_v by_o h._n t._n as_o in_o a_o epist_n ad_fw-la julian_n i_o find_v no_o such_o epistle_n in_o cyprian_n work_n but_o in_o a_o epistle_n ad_fw-la jubian●m_fw-la concern_v baptism_n of_o heretic_n i_o find_v these_o word_n about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n nos_fw-la autem_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o radicem_fw-la tenemus_fw-la that_o be_v but_o we_o who_o hold_v the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o one_o church_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o peter_n be_v not_o name_v nor_o do_v i_o find_v any_o thing_n that_o shall_v infer_v that_o by_o the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o one_o church_n he_o mean_v peter_n but_o christ_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o make_v the_o only_a head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o have_v allege_v immediate_o before_o one_o baptism_n as_o it_o be_v ephes_n 4._o 5._o it_o be_v likely_a he_o mean_v by_o one_o head_n the_o one_o lord_n mention_v vers_fw-la 5._o as_o after_o also_o he_o mention_n one_o faith_n or_o else_o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o we_o have_v remain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v one_o and_o the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o faithful_a of_o which_o several_a particular_a church_n be_v member_n and_o branch_n nor_o do_v he_o call_v peter_n the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n will_v it_o be_v for_o h._n t._n his_o purpose_n unless_o he_o mean_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o prove_v and_o there_o may_v be_v another_o reason_n give_v of_o such_o a_o title_n give_v to_o peter_n person_n only_o because_o of_o his_o eminent_a confession_n matth._n 16._o 16._o and_o his_o preach_n act_v 2._o &_o 10_o etc._n etc._n and_o though_o he_o term_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n peter_n chair_n or_o rather_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n or_o peter_n doctrine_n and_o teach_v there_o yet_o that_o prove_v not_o he_o hold_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o that_o peter_n doctrine_n be_v then_o hold_v there_o yea_o it_o be_v certain_a out_o of_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o epistle_n to_o cornelius_n mention_v before_o and_o his_o opposition_n to_o pope_n stephanus_n that_o cyprian_a do_v account_v all_o bishop_n equal_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n equal_a in_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v but_o his_o colleague_n from_o who_o he_o dissent_v and_o to_o who_o he_o deny_v appeal_n and_o who_o he_o reprove_v of_o ambition_n and_o pride_n when_o he_o seek_v to_o impose_v his_o judgement_n on_o other_o contrary_a to_o what_o cyprian_n and_o a_o whole_a synod_n of_o african_a bishop_n beside_o asiatic_n hold_v and_o therein_o oppose_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o cyprian_a never_o acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n now_o assert_v of_o those_o which_o h._n t._n allege_v in_o the_o four_o age_n not_o one_o of_o they_o give_v peter_n that_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o apostle_n and_o christian_n which_o the_o romanist_n claim_n as_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n but_o either_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o pre-eminence_n of_o gift_n or_o zeal_n or_o esteem_v or_o use_v in_o moderate_v in_o assembly_n the_o word_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o for_o it_o be_v false_o ascribe_v to_o chrysostom_n for_o however_o trapezuntius_fw-la have_v translate_v they_o yet_o in_o the_o four_o and_o fifty_o homily_n as_o it_o be_v in_o eton_n print_n the_o word_n be_v not_o as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o the_o pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v once_o a_o poor_a fisherman_n but_o on_o matth._n 16._o 18._o he_o have_v these_o word_n and_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o stone_n or_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n that_o be_v on_o the_o faith_n of_o confession_n or_o confess_v there_o he_o show_v that_o many_o shall_v believe_v and_o raise_v up_o his_o mind_n and_o make_v he_o pastor_n and_o after_o on_z vers_n 19_o these_o thing_n he_o promise_v to_o give_v he_o to_o show_v a_o fisherman_n strong_a than_o any_o stone_n or_o rock_n
scripture_n or_o many_o protestant_n one_o be_v not_o and_o thus_o i_o frame_v my_o discourse_n all_o protestant_a tenet_n say_v you_o be_v sufficient_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o many_o catholic_n doctrine_n say_v i_o deny_v by_o protestant_n be_v as_o evident_a in_o scripture_n as_o divers_a protestant_a tenet_n therefore_o many_o catholic_n doctrine_n deny_v by_o protestant_n be_v sufficient_o contain_v in_o scripture_n he_o that_o have_v hardiness_n enough_o to_o deny_v this_o conclusion_n let_v he_o compare_v the_o text_n that_o recommend_v the_o church_n authority_n in_o decide_v controversy_n and_o expound_v article_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o that_o support_v the_o protestant_n private_a spirit_n or_o particular_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n let_v he_o compare_v the_o place_n that_o favour_v priestly_a absolution_n with_o those_o on_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o necessity_n not_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o infant-baptism_n let_v he_o compare_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n though_o unwritten_a with_o what_o ever_o he_o can_v cite_v to_o prove_v the_o three_o distinct_a person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o sabbath_n so_o express_o command_v in_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o when_o he_o have_v turn_v over_o all_o his_o bible_n as_o often_o as_o he_o please_v i_o shall_v offer_v he_o only_o this_o request_n either_o to_o admit_v the_o argument_n or_o teach_v i_o to_o answer_v it_o answ_n h._n t._n sure_o have_v a_o singular_a eyesight_n which_o see_v such_o a_o evidence_n in_o this_o argument_n as_o that_o he_o see_v nothing_o more_o evident_a what_o be_v not_o this_o more_o evident_a that_o the_o whole_a be_v big_a than_o a_o part_n that_o god_n make_v the_o world_n that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n sure_o a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la be_v no_o demonstration_n special_o when_o what_o the_o man_n hold_v at_o one_o time_n upon_o second_o and_o better_a thought_n he_o relinquish_v nor_o be_v a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la fit_a to_o establish_v any_o truth_n but_o somewhat_o to_o lessen_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v thereby_o convince_v of_o hold_v inconsistency_n and_o therefore_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o give_v into_o h._n t._n and_o his_o fellow_n hand_n that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n because_o some_o protestant_a tenet_n have_v no_o better_a proof_n thence_o than_o some_o popish_a tenet_n deny_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o i_o may_v gratify_v h._n t._n as_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v in_o his_o request_n i_o tell_v he_o the_o syllogism_n be_v in_o no_o mood_n or_o figure_n that_o i_o know_v nor_o if_o i_o will_v examine_v the_o form_n of_o it_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o i_o shall_v find_v four_o term_n in_o it_o at_o least_o and_o then_o h._n t._n it_o be_v likely_a know_v his_o syllogism_n be_v naught_o nor_o do_v i_o know_v how_o to_o form_v it_o better_o unless_o it_o be_v form_v dis-junctive_o but_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o i_o to_o form_v his_o weapon_n for_o he_o to_o it_o as_o i_o find_v it_o i_o say_v that_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o all_o protestant_a tenet_n simple_o be_v sufficient_o contain_v in_o scripture_n who_o ever_o he_o be_v that_o say_v so_o yet_o i_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o but_o this_o i_o think_v that_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o tenet_n which_o the_o protestant_n hold_v against_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v controvert_v between_o they_o be_v sufficient_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o of_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v or_o else_o they_o may_v be_v reject_v and_o for_o his_o minor_n i_o deny_v it_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o those_o protestant_a tenet_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v hold_v by_o all_o or_o those_o that_o be_v avouch_v by_o common_a consent_n in_o the_o harmony_n of_o their_o confession_n except_v some_o about_o discipline_n ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n and_o for_o his_o instance_n to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v i_o be_o willing_a any_o reader_n who_o read_v what_o be_v write_v on_o both_o side_n in_o the_o five_o article_n here_o shall_v judge_v whether_o have_v more_o evidence_n in_o scripture_n the_o church_n imagine_v infallible_a authority_n in_o decide_v controversy_n or_o that_o each_o person_n be_v to_o use_v his_o own_o understanding_n to_o try_v what_o be_v propound_v to_o be_v believe_v without_o rely_v on_o any_o authority_n of_o pope_n general_a council_n or_o prelate_n who_o be_v never_o call_v the_o church_n in_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o second_o i_o do_v not_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o protestant_a tenet_n that_o infant-baptism_n be_v necessary_a and_o for_o the_o lawfulness_n i_o grant_v there_o be_v as_o much_o evidence_n in_o scripture_n for_o priest_n judiciary_n sacramental_a authoritative_a absolution_n as_o for_o it_o that_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o either_o and_o for_o the_o three_o there_o be_v protestant_n that_o grant_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o lutheran_n and_o some_o calvinist_n grant_v also_o a_o real_a presence_n to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o not_o bodily_a but_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n by_o transubstantion_n there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o in_o scripture_n of_o itself_o as_o scotus_n long_o ago_o resolve_v and_o for_o the_o primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n it_o have_v be_v tell_v this_o author_n that_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n of_o zeal_n and_o some_o other_o endowment_n be_v yield_v by_o protestant_n but_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o apostle_n be_v deny_v and_o it_o be_v prove_v before_o article_n 7._o to_o have_v no_o evidence_n in_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n though_o unwritten_a if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o true_o so_o call_v i_o shall_v not_o deny_v it_o but_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o which_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n now_o to_o we_o he_o have_v not_o prove_v in_o this_o article_n nor_o bring_v one_o text_n for_o it_o but_o some_o far-fetched_a reason_n of_o no_o validity_n but_o i_o presume_v his_o brethren_n will_v give_v he_o little_a thanks_o for_o gratify_v so_o much_o the_o antitrinitarian_n arian_n socinian_o as_o to_o yield_v that_o those_o point_n which_o be_v in_o the_o nicene_n and_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n and_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n be_v no_o better_o prove_v from_o scripture_n than_o transubstantiation_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o these_o text_n matth._n 28._o 19_o 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o john_n 1._o 1._o 1_o john_n 5._o 20._o and_o many_o more_o which_o bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr christo_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o trinity_n of_o person_n the_o son_n consubstantiality_n the_o spirit_n procession_n more_o evident_a than_o this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o transubstantiation_n thou_o be_v peter_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o h._n t._n his_o scriptureless_a reason_n for_o unwritten_a tradition_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 11._o and_o elsewhere_o acknowledge_v the_o tenet_n about_o god_n nature_n and_o the_o union_n of_o nature_n in_o christ_n to_o be_v plain_o in_o scripture_n as_o for_o sunday_n be_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o sabbath_n he_o shall_v i_o think_v allow_v somewhat_o in_o scripture_n for_o it_o col._n 2._o 16._o act_n 20_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 16._o 1_o 2._o revel_v 1._o 10._o more_o evident_a than_o for_o his_o real_a presence_n peter_n supremacy_n unwritten_a tradition_n but_o i_o see_v prejudice_n do_v much_o to_o sway_v man_n and_o make_v they_o see_v what_o other_o can_v the_o crow_n think_v she_o own_o bird_n fair_o yet_o again_o say_v h._n t._n the_o same_o syllogism_n may_v with_o equal_a evidence_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o negative_a as_o well_o as_o positive_a doctrine_n on_o either_o side_n all_o catholic_n point_v deny_v by_o protestant_n be_v sufficient_o say_v you_o condemn_v in_o scripture_n but_o many_o point_n embrace_v by_o protestant_n be_v as_o clear_o say_v i_o condemn_v in_o scripture_n as_o divers_a they_o deny_v in_o opposition_n to_o catholic_n therefore_o many_o point_n embrace_v by_o protestant_n be_v sufficient_o condemn_v in_o scripture_n where_o do_v the_o bible_n so_o plain_o forbid_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o this_o darling_n error_n and_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n that_o any_o one_o
all_o their_o worship_n and_o in_o their_o invocate_a of_o saint_n and_o angel_n as_o mediator_n to_o god_n they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o two_o great_a point_n of_o christianity_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 8._o 6._o ephes_n 4._o 5_o 6._o and_o thereby_o be_v become_v pagan_n so_o by_o their_o substitute_n of_o another_o rule_n of_o religion_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o write_n to_o wit_n unwritten_a tradition_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n approve_v by_o he_o they_o do_v prove_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v disciple_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o christian_n act_n 11._o 26._o and_o according_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o papist_n which_o name_n bellarmine_n lib._n do_v not_o be_v eccles_n cap._n 4._o do_v not_o disow_v or_o the_o pope_n church_n true_o antichristian_a sect_n vi_o say_n of_o father_n and_o council_n prove_v not_o unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n h._n t._n recite_v the_o say_n of_o eight_o father_n and_o two_o council_n for_o tradition_n the_o first_o of_o irenaus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o do_v not_o at_o all_o prove_v that_o we_o have_v now_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o if_o the_o apostle_n in_o stead_n of_o which_o fraudulent_o as_o i_o fear_v h._n t._n put_v if_o the_o father_n have_v leave_v we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o who_o they_o commit_v the_o church_n to_o understand_v which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o irenaeus_n have_v prove_v valentinus_n his_o doctrine_n of_o aeones_n or_o more_o god_n and_o lord_n than_o one_o to_o be_v false_a out_o of_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 2._o he_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o valentinian_n heretic_n when_o they_o be_v reprove_v out_o of_o scripture_n they_o be_v turn_v into_o accusation_n of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o right_a nor_o from_o authority_n and_o because_o they_o be_v diverse_o say_v and_o because_o the_o truth_n can_v be_v find_v out_o of_o these_o by_o those_o who_o know_v not_o tradition_n for_o that_o truth_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o letter_n but_o by_o live_a voice_n which_o be_v the_o very_a plea_n for_o tradition_n which_o h._n t._n here_o use_v for_o which_o cause_n paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a as_o they_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v and_o say_v they_o be_v wise_a than_o either_o presbyter_n or_o apostle_n and_o will_v neither_o consent_v to_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n and_o then_o cap._n 3._o show_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o what_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o church_n found_v by_o they_o and_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n refer_v to_o linus_n anacletus_fw-la clemens_n at_o rome_n and_o to_o polycarpus_n and_o his_o successor_n at_o smyrna_n and_o after_o use_v the_o word_n mention_v chap._n 4._o which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o mention_n tradition_n in_o all_o after_o age_n as_o a_o rule_n but_o the_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o they_o that_o know_v the_o apostle_n and_o that_o only_a in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n concern_v god_n the_o creator_n and_o only_o upon_o supposition_n there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n and_o that_o after_o he_o have_v allege_v the_o scripture_n to_o stop_v the_o course_n of_o heretic_n that_o decline_v the_o scripture_n whence_o it_o be_v apparent_a 1._o that_o irenaeus_n count_v scripture_n the_o constant_a rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o that_o he_o count_v tradition_n unwritten_a a_o rule_n only_o upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n 3._o no_o tradition_n to_o be_v that_o rule_n but_o what_o be_v from_o man_n acquaint_v with_o apostle_n 4._o to_o be_v use_v only_o in_o case_n man_n be_v so_o perverse_a as_o to_o decline_v scripture_n which_o be_v our_o case_n in_o deal_v with_o papist_n which_o move_v bishop_n jewel_n in_o his_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n to_o offer_v that_o if_o the_o papist_n can_v prove_v the_o article_n then_o enumerate_v by_o antiquity_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n he_o will_v subscribe_v which_o neither_o harding_n nor_o bellarmine_n nor_o perron_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o romanist_n can_v or_o can_v do_v the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n lib._n the_o prescript_n advers._fw-la haeret._n cap._n 21._o 37._o be_v indeed_o that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v which_o the_o church_n have_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n christ_n from_o god_n but_o he_o express_v how_o he_o mean_v it_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n but_o what_o the_o apostle_n have_v preach_v that_o be_v what_o christ_n have_v reveal_v to_o they_o i_o will_v also_o prescribe_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o prove_v but_o by_o the_o same_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o build_v they_o themselves_o by_o preach_v to_o they_o as_o well_o by_o live_a voice_n as_o they_o say_v as_o by_o epistle_n afterward_o which_o plain_o show_v that_o tertullian_n mention_v no_o other_o doctrine_n to_o be_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n than_o what_o the_o apostle_n after_o write_v nor_o from_o any_o other_o church_n than_o those_o which_o the_o apostle_n by_o preach_v build_v by_o which_o he_o mean_v the_o corinthian_a philippick_a thessalonian_n ephesian_n as_o well_o as_o roman_a chap._n 36._o and_o though_o he_o use_v against_o valentinus_n martion_n and_o other_o heretic_n the_o tradition_n of_o those_o church_n yet_o chap._n 8._o he_o plain_o direct_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o way_n to_o find_v christ_n by_o use_v his_o word_n to_o the_o jew_n john_n 5._o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n in_o which_o you_o hope_v for_o salvation_n for_o they_o do_v speak_v of_o i_o this_o will_v be_v seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v which_o be_v consider_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o tertullian_n be_v far_o from_o assert_v unwritten_a tradition_n of_o thing_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n deliver_v in_o these_o late_a age_n and_o call_v apostolical_a by_o pope_n and_o council_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n cyprian_n word_n lib._n 2._o epist_n cap._n 3._o ad_fw-la cacilium_fw-la in_o some_o edition_n epist_n 63._o show_v his_o mistake_n about_o tradition_n as_o he_o count_v the_o mingle_n of_o water_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n tradition_n so_o he_o do_v also_o rebaptisation_n in_o which_o the_o romanist_n desert_n he_o neither_o show_v he_o hold_v unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n yea_o argue_v against_o they_o that_o use_v water_n without_o wine_n he_o prove_v the_o lord_n tradition_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o urge_v it_o against_o they_o and_o though_o his_o reason_n be_v frivolous_a yet_o these_o expression_n show_v he_o adhere_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o his_o rule_n but_o if_o it_o be_v command_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v and_o deliver_v by_o his_o apostle_n that_o as_o oft_o as_o we_o drink_v in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n also_o do_v we_o be_v find_v that_o it_o be_v not_o observe_v of_o we_o which_o be_v command_v unless_o we_o also_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v and_o mingle_v the_o cup_n in_o like_a manner_n recede_v not_o from_o the_o divine_a magistery_n again_o i_o marvel_v enough_o whence_o this_o have_v be_v use_v that_o against_o the_o evangelical_n and_o apostolical_a discipline_n in_o some_o place_n water_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o lord_n cup_n which_o alone_o can_v express_v christ_n be_v blood_n whence_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o even_o in_o cyprian_n day_n corrupt_a usage_n come_v in_o by_o follow_v other_o tradition_n than_o those_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n cyprian_n add_v this_o remarkable_a speech_n wherefore_o if_o christ_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o attend_v what_o any_o one_o before_o we_o have_v think_v be_v to_o be_v do_v but_o what_o christ_n who_o be_v before_o all_o neither_o ought_v we_o to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o a_o man_n out_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n since_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n and_o say_v without_o reason_n do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v mandate_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n origen_n word_n do_v not_o prove_v unwritten_a tradition_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o say_v in_o our_o understand_a scripture_n we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n tract_n 27._o in_o cap._n 23._o st._n matthai_n nor_o athanasius_n when_o he_o say_v this_o doctrine_n we_o have_v demonstrate_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n by_o
wherein_o be_v general_a warning_n of_o not_o receive_v addition_n to_o the_o scripture_n yea_o though_o the_o name_n of_o moses_n and_o paul_n be_v pretend_v especial_o when_o the_o tradition_n do_v adulterate_a the_o write_a word_n as_o popish_a tradition_n about_o image_n fast_v single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n monastic_a vow_n and_o other_o of_o their_o tradition_n do_v yet_o he_o add_v object_n we_o may_v have_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o bible_n or_o write_v word_n only_o answ_n no_o we_o can_v for_o there_o have_v be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v infinite_a dispute_n about_o that_o to_o the_o world_n end_n as_o well_o what_o book_n be_v canonical_a as_o what_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v of_o every_o verse_n and_o chapter_n nor_o can_v we_o ever_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o either_o but_o by_o mean_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n so_o that_o if_o this_o be_v interrupt_v and_o fail_v for_o any_o one_o whole_a age_n together_o as_o protestant_n defend_v it_o for_o many_o the_o whole_a bible_n for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v in_o that_o space_n be_v change_v and_o corrupt_v nor_o can_v the_o contrary_a ever_o be_v evince_v without_o new_a revelation_n from_o god_n the_o dead_a letter_n can_v speak_v for_o itself_o i_o reply_v this_o profane_a wretch_n it_o seem_v take_v delight_n in_o this_o blasphemous_a title_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n often_o in_o reproach_n term_v it_o the_o dead_a letter_n which_o he_o have_v no_o warrant_n to_o do_v for_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o ro._n 7._o 3_o 6._o 2_o cor._n 3._o 6._o the_o law_n or_o old_a covenant_n be_v term_v the_o letter_n and_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a and_o kill_a yet_o this_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o law_n because_o it_o be_v write_v but_o because_o it_o be_v abrogate_a in_o the_o gospel_n as_o kill_v by_o its_o sentence_n sinner_n that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n write_v in_o it_o gal._n 3._o 10._o and_o yet_o it_o can_v speak_v for_o itself_o as_o well_o yea_o incomparable_o better_o than_o any_o write_n of_o pope_n council_n or_o father_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v his_o tradition_n which_o be_v as_o dead_a a_o letter_n as_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o his_o expression_n there_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o iniquity_n in_o that_o he_o prefer_v before_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o uncertain_a report_n of_o credulous_a superstitious_a man_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o dote_a pope_n as_o more_o lively_a than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o man_n who_o but_o the_o next_o page_n before_o confess_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a write_v letter_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a to_o salvation_n 2_o tim._n 3_o 15._o to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o old_a scripture_n and_o yet_o here_o to_o say_v that_o we_o can_v have_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o bible_n or_o write_v word_n only_o what_o be_v it_o but_o flat_o to_o gainsay_v the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o more_o impious_o and_o impudent_o do_v in_o that_o he_o ascribe_v that_o to_o uncertain_a unwritten_a tradition_n which_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o of_o his_o fellow_n be_v able_a to_o show_v where_o it_o be_v or_o how_o it_o may_v be_v certain_o know_v which_o he_o deny_v to_o holy_a scripture_n as_o for_o his_o reason_n it_o be_v frivolous_a for_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o that_o of_o which_o there_o will_v be_v infinite_a dispute_n to_o the_o world_n end_n else_o have_v he_o no_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n infallibility_n power_n in_o temporal_n superiority_n to_o a_o council_n of_o which_o yet_o there_o have_v be_v and_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v infinite_a dispute_n as_o there_o have_v be_v dispute_n about_o the_o canonical_a book_n so_o there_o have_v be_v about_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o about_o the_o time_n of_o keep_v easter_n rebaptization_n etc._n etc._n nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o there_o be_v infinite_a dispute_n about_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o every_o verse_n and_o chapter_n of_o the_o bible_n sure_o among_o christian_n there_o be_v no_o dispute_n of_o many_o fundamental_a truth_n which_o every_o christian_a acknowledge_v and_o yet_o if_o there_o be_v it_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o what_o be_v incident_a not_o only_o to_o philosopher_n write_n but_o also_o to_o the_o pope_n decree_n about_o which_o there_o be_v infinite_a dispute_n among_o the_o canonist_n to_o the_o canon_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n about_o which_o there_o be_v dispute_n between_o catharinus_n soto_n vega_n andradius_fw-la and_o other_o to_o the_o pope_n breves_fw-la as_o to_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o his_o breves_fw-la about_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o be_v not_o only_o dispute_v by_o king_n james_n and_o other_o protestant_n but_o also_o by_o widrington_n and_o other_o popish_a priest_n and_o to_o his_o monitory_a and_o interdict_v of_o venice_n dispute_v by_o friar_n paul_n of_o venice_n and_o other_o against_o bellarmine_n baronius_n and_o other_o and_o if_o we_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o either_o the_o canonical_a book_n or_o their_o sense_n but_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a then_o can_v h._n t._n never_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o supremacy_n but_o by_o it_o and_o if_o so_o than_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o his_o ground_n of_o it_o and_o so_o he_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o catholic_n religion_n by_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o he_o pretend_v in_o his_o title-page_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v impertinent_o allege_v by_o he_o he_o shall_v only_o allege_v tradition_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v father_n council_n or_o pope_n saying_n it_o can_v assure_v better_a than_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v more_o controvert_v than_o it_o and_o therefore_o by_o his_o reason_n there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n in_o his_o faith_n and_o then_o he_o be_v mad_a if_o he_o suffer_v for_o it_o as_o he_o be_v who_o suffer_v for_o any_o man_n saying_n who_o may_v be_v deceive_v but_o we_o be_v assure_v both_o of_o the_o book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n not_o only_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a but_o also_o by_o universal_a tradition_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o author_n by_o their_o matter_n and_o of_o the_o meaning_n without_o popish_a tradition_n not_o only_o by_o common_a help_n of_o understanding_n and_o art_n get_v by_o study_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o late_a and_o elder_a expositor_n but_o also_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n assist_v we_o when_o we_o seek_v it_o due_o and_o for_o the_o interruption_n of_o this_o tradition_n the_o protestant_n do_v not_o pretend_v it_o to_o have_v be_v one_o whole_a age_n or_o day_n though_o it_o have_v be_v sometime_o more_o full_a than_o at_o other_o time_n and_o we_o have_v infallible_a assurance_n that_o the_o whole_a bible_n have_v not_o be_v change_v or_o corrupt_v so_o but_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o copy_n and_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n the_o chief_a point_n be_v free_a from_o change_n and_o what_o be_v corrupt_v may_v be_v amend_v so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o consider_v god_n providence_n for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n we_o assure_v ourselves_o the_o lord_n will_v preserve_v the_o scripture_n which_o i_o think_v to_o h._n t._n shall_v give_v good_a assurance_n since_o pag._n 119_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v by_o christ_n the_o depository_n of_o all_o divine_o reveal_v verity_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v by_o all_o and_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n to_o all_o whereby_o and_o by_o other_o argument_n it_o may_v be_v evince_v without_o new_a revelation_n from_o god_n that_o though_o h._n t._n his_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a shall_v have_v fail_v for_o any_o one_o whole_a age_n together_o yet_o the_o whole_a bible_n shall_v not_o in_o that_o space_n be_v change_v or_o corrupt_v and_o this_o be_v reply_n enough_o to_o his_o venomous_a answer_n to_o that_o objection_n which_o tend_v to_o depress_v the_o scripture_n authority_n which_o confess_o come_v from_o god_n to_o exalt_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o story_n of_o their_o life_n prove_v sufficient_o it_o be_v further_a urge_v object_n many_o other_o sign_n also_o do_v jesus_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o this_o book_n but_o these_o be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o
believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n st._n john_n 20._o 30_o 31._o therefore_o st._n john_n gospel_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n answ_n i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n for_o st._n john_n omit_v many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o our_o lord_n prayer_n and_o his_o last_o supper_n which_o be_v both_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o though_o he_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o have_v life_n he_o say_v not_o that_o these_o thing_n only_o be_v write_v or_o be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o purpose_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n so_o that_o he_o exclude_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o it_o be_v no_o unusual_a thing_n in_o scripture_n to_o ascribe_v the_o whole_a effect_n to_o that_o which_o be_v but_o the_o cause_n in_o part_n thus_o christ_n promise_v beatitude_n to_o every_o single_a christian_a virtue_n st._n matthew_n 5._o and_o st._n paul_n salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o confess_v with_o his_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o believe_v that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a rom._n 10._o 4_o 9_o 10._o yet_o more_o than_o this_o be_v requisite_a to_o salvation_n i_o reply_v he_o that_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o believe_v have_v life_n do_v inculcate_v that_o these_o be_v sufficient_a so_o far_o as_o writing_n or_o reveal_n be_v requisite_a to_o these_o end_n or_o else_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o vain_a attempt_n frustra_fw-la sit_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la assequitur_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o be_v do_v in_o vain_a which_o attain_v not_o the_o end_n and_o that_o be_v vain_o do_v even_o deliberate_o which_o be_v attempt_v to_o be_v do_v by_o that_o mean_n which_o be_v foreknow_v to_o be_v insufficient_a and_o therefore_o h._n t._n must_v either_o yield_v st._n john_n gospel_n sufficient_a to_o beget_v say_v and_o procure_v life_n or_o else_o john_n to_o have_v be_v imprudent_a to_o intend_v and_o attempt_v it_o by_o write_v it_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v ill_a to_o deny_v the_o consequence_n till_o he_o can_v avoid_v these_o absurdity_n as_o for_o his_o reason_n it_o be_v insufficient_a for_o though_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n omit_v by_o john_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a but_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n without_o they_o and_o though_o he_o say_v not_o that_o these_o thing_n only_o be_v write_v yet_o he_o say_v these_o thing_n only_o which_o be_v write_v be_v for_o belief_n and_o life_n and_o therefore_o sufficient_a thereto_o and_o though_o he_o exclude_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o apostolical_a tradition_n yet_o he_o determine_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o have_v life_n without_o they_o as_o for_o the_o ascribe_v beatitude_n and_o salvation_n to_o each_o single_a christian_a virtue_n it_o be_v either_o because_o the_o beatitude_n be_v mean_v of_o a_o beatitude_n in_o part_n or_o in_o some_o respect_n as_o matth._n 5._o 5._o the_o reason_n do_v import_v or_o else_o because_o all_o other_o christian_a virtue_n and_o duty_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v connex_v or_o comprehend_v in_o that_o one_o which_o be_v name_v and_o thus_o this_o objection_n be_v vindicate_v the_o next_o be_v object_n st._n luke_n tell_v we_o he_o have_v write_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v and_o teach_v act._n 1._o 1._o therefore_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v in_o his_o gospel_n answ_n he_o write_v of_o all_o the_o principal_a passage_n of_o his_o life_n and_o death_n i_o grant_v and_o that_o be_v the_o whole_a scope_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o evangelist_n of_o all_o absolute_o which_o he_o do_v and_o teach_v i_o deny_v for_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o during_o the_o forty_o day_n which_o christ_n remain_v with_o they_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o often_o appear_v to_o they_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o thing_n concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n very_o few_o of_o which_o instruction_n be_v mention_v by_o st._n luke_n nor_o do_v he_o or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o evangelist_n say_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o gospel_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o the_o thing_n by_o he_o reveal_v to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v great_a and_o many_o according_a to_o that_o i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o you_o but_o you_o can_v now_o bear_v they_o but_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n come_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o come_v he_o shall_v show_v you_o st._n john_n 16._o 12_o 13_o 14._o add_v to_o this_o that_o if_o all_o thing_n which_o jesus_n teach_v and_o do_v shall_v be_v write_v the_o whole_a world_n will_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n st._n john_n cap._n 21._o vers_fw-la last_o therefore_o your_o consequence_n be_v false_a and_o that_o say_n of_o st._n luke_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v i_o reply_v i_o grant_v the_o say_n of_o luke_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v and_o yet_o the_o consequence_n be_v not_o false_a it_o be_v true_a that_o st._n luke_n do_v not_o write_v all_o absolute_o without_o limitation_n which_o jesus_n do_v and_o teach_v neither_o do_v he_o say_v it_o nor_o be_v the_o argument_n so_o frame_v as_o if_o he_o do_v but_o thus_o luke_n write_v of_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v until_o the_o day_n that_o he_o be_v take_v up_o and_o these_o be_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o luke_n gospel_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o romanist_n say_v that_o thing_n of_o mere_a belief_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holiday_n creed_n and_o service_n of_o their_o church_n and_o h._n t._n himself_o in_o the_o next_o leaf_n pag._n 118._o say_v the_o whole_a frame_n of_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n make_v sensible_a and_o visible_a by_o external_a and_o uniform_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n now_o these_o be_v only_o the_o principal_a passage_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o death_n beside_o which_o many_o more_o practical_a point_n and_o all_o fundamental_a gospel-truth_n be_v deliver_v therein_o therefore_o even_o by_o their_o own_o grant_n all_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o luke_n it_o be_v certain_a their_o intent_n especial_o of_o john_n be_v to_o write_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o such_o sermon_n as_o tend_v to_o rectify_v the_o error_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n and_o prediction_n of_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o his_o ascension_n it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v instruct_v they_o for_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n in_o the_o thing_n concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o whether_o they_o be_v mention_v by_o luke_n or_o not_o it_o be_v uncertain_a that_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n oral_a unwritten_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o as_o that_o without_o a_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o than_o it_o can_v be_v have_v be_v not_o prove_v the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o thing_n mention_v john_n 16._o 12_o 13_o 14._o &_o 21._o vers_fw-la last_o and_o therefore_o the_o consequence_n be_v not_o infringe_v by_o these_o exception_n i_o add_v that_o h._n t._n say_v not_o true_a that_o luke_n say_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o his_o gospel_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o luke_n 2._o 33._o the_o prediction_n of_o christ_n of_o send_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n which_o act_v 2._o 33._o be_v express_o term_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v set_v down_o sect_n viii_o h._n t._n solve_v not_o the_o objection_n from_o reason_n for_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n without_o unwritten_a tradition_n h._n t._n proceed_v object_n at_o least_o the_o whole_a bible_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n either_o for_o belief_n or_o practice_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o explicit_o and_o plain_o therefore_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n answ_n i_o deny_v both_o antecedent_n and_o consequence_n the_o three_o creed_n be_v not_o there_o the_o four_o first_o council_n be_v not_o there_o there_o be_v nothing_o express_o prohibit_v polygamy_n or_o rebaptisation_n nor_o express_o affirm_v three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a nature_n or_o the_o son_n consubstantiality_n to_o the_o father_n or_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o or_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n or_o for_o the_o
the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v none_o of_o he_o ver_fw-la 14_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 19_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o you_o have_v of_o god_n and_o you_o be_v not_o your_o own_o 2_o cor._n 6._o 16._o for_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o god_n have_v say_v that_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v amid_o they_o and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n revel_v 2._o 1._o christ_n walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n but_o christ_n be_v present_a by_o his_o spirit_n and_o protection_n with_o other_o church_n and_o person_n than_o such_o as_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n even_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o be_v apparent_a in_o that_o they_o call_v jesus_n the_o lord_n which_o none_o can_v do_v but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o they_o cry_v abba_n father_n and_o thereby_o show_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n gal._n 4_o 6._o can_v any_o have_v the_o face_n to_o say_v that_o the_o million_o of_o christian_n greek_n and_o other_o in_o persecution_n who_o servent_o invocate_v god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v his_o because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a see_v yea_o be_v there_o not_o more_o evidence_n of_o christ_n spirit_n among_o they_o than_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v so_o much_o uncleanness_n and_o so_o little_a of_o holiness_n that_o even_o h._n t._n to_o prove_v its_o holiness_n be_v fain_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o some_o suppose_a saint_n many_o hundred_o of_o year_n since_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o late_a scarcity_n 6._o if_o none_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n than_o none_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o they_o since_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o but_o that_o be_v false_a for_o person_n not_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n may_v be_v build_v on_o christ_n a_o spiritual_a house_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 5._o otherwise_o beside_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v lay_v to_o wit_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v another_o foundation_n on_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v build_v to_o wit_n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n but_o paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 3_o 11._o no_o man_n can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n to_o build_v upon_o a_o spiritual_a house_n to_o god_n but_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v jesus_n christ_n and_o peter_n himself_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 4._o tell_v we_o christ_n be_v the_o live_a stone_n on_o which_o they_o be_v build_v and_o ver_fw-la 6._o allege_v the_o scripture_n say_v behold_v i_o lay_v in_o zion_n a_o chief_a corner_n stone_n elect_v precious_a and_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a therefore_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v a_o spiritual_a house_n and_o a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n eph._n 2._o 19_o 20_o 21._o where_o he_o say_v of_o the_o ephesian_n that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n and_o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o who_o all_o the_o build_n fit_o frame_v together_o grow_v unto_o a_o holy_a temple_n in_o the_o lord_n in_o who_o you_o also_o be_v build_v together_o for_o a_o habitation_n of_o god_n through_o the_o spirit_n and_o ephes_n 4._o 4._o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n even_o as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o call_n 5_o one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n 6_o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o you_o all_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12._o for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n 13_o for_o by_o one_o spirit_n be_v we_o all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whether_o we_o be_v jew_n or_o greek_n whether_o we_o be_v bond_n or_o free_a and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n v._o 27._o now_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a from_o whence_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o communion_n with_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n faith_n and_o baptism_n without_o any_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v person_n to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o ephesian_n and_o corinthian_n the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v sufficient_a now_o to_o make_v english_a or_o other_o people_n a_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v thereto_o now_o than_o be_v then_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v galat._n 3._o 28_o 29._o for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n if_o you_o be_v christ_n then_o be_v you_o abra●ams_n seed_n and_o heir_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n col._n 3._o 11._o where_o there_o be_v neither_o greek_a nor_o jew_n circumcision_n nor_o uncircumcision_n barbarian_a scythian_a bond_n nor_o free_a but_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o but_o then_o there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o house_n of_o god_n or_o body_n but_o communion_n with_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n faith_n and_o baptism_n without_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o text_n allege_v show_v therefore_o this_o communion_n with_o christ_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o english_a a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n without_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 7._o if_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n be_v true_a church_n afore_o either_o peter_n be_v at_o rome_n or_o any_o church_n there_o gather_v than_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n now_o that_o person_n be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n now_o than_o be_v then_o and_o it_o can_v not_o then_o be_v require_v to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n when_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o church_n there_o but_o there_o be_v apostolical_a true_a church_n of_o god_n at_o jerusalem_n samaria_n and_o elsewhere_o afore_o either_o peter_n be_v at_o rome_n or_o any_o church_n there_o gather_v as_o the_o history_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n show_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 8._o if_o there_o be_v none_o true_a church_n but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n than_o the_o church_n in_o india_n and_o elsewhere_o so_o remote_a from_o rome_n that_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o bishop_n or_o see_v of_o rome_n nor_o be_v require_v communion_n with_o it_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n because_o they_o do_v not_o that_o which_o be_v of_o mere_a positive_a institution_n they_o be_v unavoidable_o ignorant_a of_o and_o consequent_o shall_v be_v damn_v but_o this_o be_v too_o absurd_a since_o it_o impute_v to_o god_n tyranny_n in_o require_v that_o which_o can_v be_v do_v and_o cruelty_n in_o damn_v for_o not_o do_v it_o ergo._fw-la 9_o if_o to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o father_n who_o in_o their_o write_n and_o creed_n never_o require_v this_o of_o the_o believer_n to_o constitute_v they_o a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n very_o unfaithful_a or_o defective_a in_o their_o tradition_n since_o they_o do_v not_o require_v or_o teach_v this_o as_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o write_n and_o creed_n but_o this_o be_v false_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o protestation_n of_o their_o integrity_n in_o not_o shun_v to_o declare_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o
in_o paul_n day_n in_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o rom._n 14._o 2._o that_o one_o believe_v he_o may_v eat_v all_o thing_n another_o who_o be_v weak_a do_v eat_v herb_n ver._n 5._o one_o man_n esteem_v one_o day_n above_o another_o another_o esteem_v every_o day_n alike_o in_o after_o age_n the_o difference_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o if_o reckon_v will_v make_v a_o large_a catalogue_n 4._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n that_o the_o company_n and_o their_o profession_n be_v so_o visible_a as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v discern_v as_o the_o roman_a senate_n be_v or_o the_o venetian_a republic_n and_o french_a kingdom_n be_v for_o then_o the_o disciple_n which_o be_v assemble_v the_o door_n be_v shut_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n john_n 20._o 19_o have_v not_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n nor_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n revel_v 12._o 14._o nor_o those_o that_o wand_n red_a in_o den_n and_o cave_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o desert_n and_o mountain_n heb._n 11._o 38._o then_o the_o saint_n in_o persecution_n shall_v not_o be_v bless_v as_o christ_n say_v matth._n 5._o 10._o but_o curse_a as_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n 5._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o bring_v of_o a_o true_a church_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o it_o a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n for_o then_o the_o first_o company_n of_o such_o professor_n though_o call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o want_v of_o succession_n 6._o much_o less_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o succession_n in_o the_o same_o place_n for_o then_o when_o christ_n remove_v the_o candlestick_n that_o be_v the_o church_n out_o of_o its_o place_n as_o he_o threaten_v revel_v 2._o 5._o though_o believer_n shall_v come_v to_o dwell_v there_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o of_o the_o interruption_n of_o succession_n in_o that_o place_n the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n after_o the_o persecution_n have_v not_o be_v a_o true_a church_n if_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v scatter_v as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n act_v 8._o 1_o 2._o do_v a_o church_n persecute_v and_o drive●_n out_o of_o a_o place_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n because_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o their_o dwelling_n suppose_v the_o place_n waste_v and_o destroy_v shall_v that_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v there_o before_o 7._o much_o less_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o continuance_n without_o any_o notable_a interruption_n in_o each_o age_n for_o there_o may_v be_v many_o hindrance_n of_o election_n of_o bishop_n and_o ordination_n of_o priest_n there_o may_v be_v scatter_n of_o the_o laic_n as_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n act_v 8._o 1._o and_o yet_o the_o be_v and_o verity_n of_o the_o church_n continue_v 8._o if_o a_o church_n must_v be_v judge_v no_o true_a church_n because_o no_o write_n or_o monument_n have_v keep_v the_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n from_o christ_n till_o this_o time_n a_o church_n shall_v be_v condemn_v as_o no_o true_a church_n for_o want_v of_o write_n and_o monument_n or_o because_o they_o be_v now_o lose_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o inundation_n of_o barbarism_n and_o barbarous_a people_n who_o spoil_n learning_n and_o art_n which_o yet_o popish_a writer_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o nine_o age_n term_v by_o genebrard_n chron._n l._n 4._o the_o unhappy_a age_n for_o want_v of_o learned_a writer_n and_o h._n t._n himself_o p._n 25._o say_v in_o this_o ten_o age_n or_o century_n i_o find_v no_o general_n council_n nor_o yet_o provincial_a in_o which_o any_o controversy_n of_o moment_n be_v decide_v sect_n v._o none_o of_o the_o text_n allege_v by_o h._n t._n prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o succession_n as_o he_o imagine_v to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o for_o the_o text_n he_o allege_v they_o be_v all_o so_o impertinent_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v likely_a have_v he_o not_o presume_v he_o shall_v meet_v with_o very_o credulous_a reader_n he_o will_v not_o have_v mention_v they_o or_o at_o least_o he_o will_v have_v show_v how_o he_o prove_v his_o proposition_n from_o they_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v so_o if_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o instruct_v and_o not_o impose_v on_o his_o reader_n the_o first_o text_n isa_n 59_o 21._o be_v no_o promise_n of_o such_o a_o succession_n in_o any_o visible_a church_n as_o h._n t._n speak_v of_o but_o of_o a_o continuance_n of_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n with_o the_o person_n there_o mean_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v peculiar_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o apostle_n allege_v rom._n 11._o 26._o however_o they_o be_v only_o the_o elect_n who_o can_v be_v there_o mean_v since_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v good_a to_o none_o other_o none_o other_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n not_o depart_v from_o they_o not_o any_o whole_a visible_a church_n among_o the_o gentile_n from_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v depart_v in_o the_o three_o next_o text_n isa_n 60._o 1_o 3_o 11._o isa_n 62._o 6._o ezek._n 37._o 26._o the_o very_a word_n apply_v the_o promise_n to_o hieru●alem_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n so_o that_o if_o they_o speak_v of_o any_o continue_a succession_n in_o any_o visible_a church_n in_o all_o age_n it_o must_v be_v the_o jewish_a which_o it_o be_v certain_a have_v have_v no_o such_o succession_n but_o be_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a olive_n to_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o they_o in_o h._n t._n his_o sense_n till_o they_o be_v reingrassed_a the_o next_o dan._n 7._o 13_o 14._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o continue_a succession_n which_o h._n t._n imagine_v of_o every_o true_a visible_a church_n but_o of_o the_o duration_n of_o christ_n dominion_n which_o shall_v not_o pass_v away_o to_o another_o that_o be_v there_o be_v no_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v succeed_v to_o it_o as_o there_o do_v to_o the_o former_a monarchy_n nor_o shall_v it_o be_v destroy_v as_o they_o be_v but_o shall_v be_v continue_v to_o christ_n without_o any_o succession_n so_o that_o this_o text_n mention_n not_o h._n t._n his_o succession_n but_o exclude_v succession_n of_o any_o other_o to_o christ_n dominion_n matth._n 28._o 20._o intimate_v a_o succession_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n of_o teacher_n and_o so_o do_v ephes_n 4._o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o but_o not_o in_o every_o true_a visible_a church_n nor_o so_o conspicuous_a as_o that_o all_o may_v know_v and_o discern_v the_o church_n as_o man_n discern_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n nor_o so_o apparent_a as_o that_o there_o may_v be_v produce_v a_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n from_o christ_n time_n till_o now_o much_o less_o do_v john_n 14._o 16._o prove_v such_o a_o succession_n it_o be_v only_o a_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n abide_v with_o the_o apostle_n for_o ever_o which_o be_v no_o promise_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o visible_a church_n now_o sect_n vi_o the_o succession_n pretend_v to_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n prove_v not_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o the_o contrary_n bu●_n h._n t._n content_v himself_o to_o have_v set_v down_o these_o text_n leave_v the_o reader_n to_o extract_v what_o he_o can_v out_o of_o they_o and_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o minor_a that_o the_o church_n now_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o no_o other_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n which_o according_a to_o his_o meaning_n be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o church_n either_o in_o rome_n or_o italy_n or_o spain_n or_o france_n or_o germany_n or_o poland_n or_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o have_v own_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o doctrine_n and_o be_v subject_n to_o his_o rule_n and_o no_o other_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o the_o now_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o conspicuous_a as_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o catalogue_n of_o such_o produce_v out_o of_o good_a record_n and_o no_o other_o can_v do_v so_o so_o that_o then_o if_o he_o prove_v his_o minor_n he_o must_v prove_v 1._o that_o church_n to_o have_v this_o succession_n continue_v 2._o that_o no_o other_o have_v which_o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o do_v by_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n
same_o faith_n with_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n for_o 1._o according_a to_o his_o own_o allegation_n the_o agreement_n of_o profession_n be_v never_o in_o any_o age_n entire_o the_o same_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n afore_o the_o sixteen_o century_n and_o the_o trent_n council_n in_o all_o the_o age_n before_o the_o most_o he_o can_v produce_v be_v that_o after_o the_o five_o or_o six_o first_o century_n some_o in_o each_o age_n hold_v some_o of_o the_o point_n now_o hold_v by_o the_o papist_n but_o deny_v by_o protestant_n the_o most_o we_o can_v find_v in_o the_o first_o age_n be_v some_o agreement_n in_o rite_n and_o some_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n take_v either_o from_o forge_a write_n impose_v on_o the_o first_o pope_n or_o some_o say_n of_o father_n misinterpret_v 2._o he_o confess_v sundry_a age_n to_o wit_n the_o second_o and_o three_o produce_v no_o council_n and_o that_o he_o find_v no_o general_a council_n nor_o yet_o provincial_a in_o the_o ten_o age_n in_o which_o any_o controversy_n of_o moment_n be_v decide_v 3._o of_o those_o council_n he_o do_v produce_v there_o be_v no_o one_o general_a council_n allege_v in_o the_o four_o first_o century_n which_o be_v hold_v at_o rome_n or_o do_v acknowledge_v subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o now_o they_o require_v and_o they_o be_v all_o or_o most_o of_o they_o of_o the_o greek_n church_n which_o do_v and_o do_v yet_o deny_v such_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o h._n t._n mean_n it_o be_v false_o say_v that_o they_o prove_v his_o continue_a succession_n in_o the_o church_n now_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 4._o for_o the_o nation_n convert_v and_o christian_a professor_n in_o his_o catalogue_n there_o be_v few_o of_o they_o roman_n or_o convert_v by_o any_o from_o rome_n or_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v they_o witness_n of_o a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n continue_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n in_o the_o church_n now_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v extreme_a impudence_n and_o vanity_n nevertheless_o let_v we_o view_v his_o catalogue_n sect_n vii_o the_o catalogue_n of_o h._n t._n be_v defective_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o pretend_a succession_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o first_o age_n he_o allege_v christ_n and_o st._n peter_n the_o apostle_n linus_n cletus_n clemens_n and_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n st._n peter_n preside_v act._n 15._o as_o a_o general_a council_n and_o then_o he_o recite_v eleven_o roman_a bishop_n from_o the_o year_n 100_o and_o have_v say_v somewhat_o for_o peter_n preside_v and_o the_o translation_n of_o his_o chair_n from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n he_o name_v some_o catholic_n professor_n to_o the_o year_n 100_o and_o the_o spread_a of_o the_o church_n over_o all_o those_o country_n to_o which_o st._n paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n and_o some_o other_o as_o france_n spain_n england_n and_o some_o catholic_n professor_n to_o the_o year_n 200._o with_o a_o false_o so_o call_v canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n approve_v in_o the_o six●h_o general_n synod_n answ_n that_o all_o this_o be_v little_a to_o his_o purpose_n appear_v by_o consider_v 1_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a which_o he_o suppose_v 1._o that_o because_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n right_o so_o term_v and_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v arrogant_o usurp_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v therefore_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v successor_n to_o christ_n in_o such_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n as_o no_o other_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n be_v and_o that_o the_o title_n of_o vicar_n of_o christ_n belong_v to_o he_o peculiar_o which_o be_v the_o title_n blasphemous_o ascribe_v to_o he_o by_o flatter_a romanist_n 2._o that_o christ_n have_v a_o successor_n in_o his_o pastoral_a office_n though_o the_o scripture_n ascribe_v to_o christ_n because_o of_o his_o live_n for_o ever_o a_o office_n which_o pass_v not_o to_o any_o other_o as_o aaron_n do_v heb._n 7._o 24._o 3._o that_o peter_n be_v successor_n to_o christ_n in_o the_o pastoral_n office_n he_o have_v and_o no_o other_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o can_v challenge_v succession_n to_o christ_n or_o peter_n it_o shall_v be_v rather_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o mother_n church_n if_o any_o where_o christ_n preach_v and_o as_o the_o apostle_n and_o high_a priest_n of_o our_o profession_n offer_v himself_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o circumcision_n rom._n 15._o 8._o and_o peter_n be_v apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n gal._n 2._o 7._o and_o paul_n when_o he_o go_v to_o see_v he_o which_o romanist_n make_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o superiority_n go_v to_o jerusalem_n gal._n 1._o 17._o not_o to_o rome_n and_o if_o he_o be_v precedent_n in_o the_o council_n act._n 15._o as_o h._n t._n imagine_v it_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n not_o at_o rome_n 4._o it_o be_v false_a that_o either_o christ_n or_o peter_n or_o the_o catholic_n professor_n he_o name_n in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o age_n hold_v the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o point_n wherein_o the_o protestant_n who_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v dissent_n from_o they_o 2._o that_o if_o all_o be_v grant_v h._n t._n which_o he_o say_v about_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o two_o first_o age_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o amount_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o the_o twenty_o eight_o article_n he_o hold_v in_o his_o manual_n or_o the_o article_n in_o pope_n pius_fw-la the_o four_o his_o creed_n to_o have_v be_v hold_v by_o any_o of_o they_o not_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n transubstantiation_n invocation_n of_o saint_n decease_v half_a communion_n worship_v of_o image_n etc._n etc._n for_o peter_n may_v be_v precedent_n at_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o may_v translate_v his_o chair_n from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n it_o may_v be_v decree_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v from_o other_o bishop_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n chief_a honour_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o neither_o peter_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n visible_a monarch_n or_o ruler_n over_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n mention_n may_v be_v make_v of_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n yet_o the_o mass_n no_o proper_o so_o call_v sacrifice_n propitiatory_a for_o quick_a and_o dead_a there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o any_o of_o christ_n or_o john_n baptist_n or_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o james_n or_o john_n or_o judes'_v sermon_n or_o write_n to_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n but_o enough_o to_o the_o contrary_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o martyr_n or_o confessor_n allege_v of_o the_o two_o first_o age_n of_o who_o he_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v any_o one_o sentence_n of_o they_o which_o may_v demonstrate_v their_o acknowledge_v of_o any_o one_o of_o the_o point_n now_o hold_v by_o the_o romanist_n which_o be_v by_o the_o protestant_n forename_a contradict_v which_o will_v appear_v by_o consider_v the_o frivolousness_n of_o what_o h._n t._n here_o produce_v peter_n say_v he_o define_v act._n 15._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o that_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o the_o gentile_n therefore_o he_o have_v the_o premacy_n over_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o if_o the_o define_n in_o a_o council_n or_o college_n do_v prove_v superiority_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o james_n have_v the_o premacy_n since_o he_o speak_v least_o and_o according_a to_o his_o sentence_n be_v the_o decree_n paphnutius_fw-la in_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o sozome●●l_v 1._o hist_o c._n 22._o relate_v when_o the_o council_n be_v about_o to_o forbid_v priest_n the_o use_n of_o wife_n define_v the_o contrary_a and_o the_o nicene_n council_n approve_v it_o be_v he_o therefore_o the_o primate_n over_o the_o other_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n as_o in_o consequence_n it_o be_v which_o h._n t._n add_v hicrom_o say_v peter_n be_v prince_n and_o author_n of_o the_o decree_n therefore_o he_o have_v the_o primacy_n that_o be_v the_o supreme_a headship_n over_o the_o apostle_n and_o whole_a church_n though_o be_v prince_n and_o author_n of_o the_o decree_n import_v no_o more_o but_o to_o give_v sentence_n first_o according_a to_o which_o the_o decree_n be_v
the_o patriarch_n not_o in_o presidency_n or_o if_o in_o presidency_n yet_o so_o as_o to_o be_v precedent_n svo_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o his_o own_o right_n as_o one_o of_o the_o patriarch_n without_o deputation_n from_o rome_n h._n t._n add_v the_o chalcedon_n council_n father_n 600._o pope_n leo_n preside_v anno_fw-la dom_fw-la 451._o against_o eutyches_n but_o pope_n leo_n be_v precedent_n only_o by_o his_o legate_n and_o together_o with_o they_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o juvenal_n of_o jerusalem_n do_v preside_v and_o when_o the_o pope_n legate_n oppose_v the_o ascribe_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n equal_a authority_n and_o privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o the_o six_o hundred_o father_n determine_v for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n but_o what_o do_v the_o council_n in_o these_o two_o age_n say_v for_o h._n t._n his_o minor_a he_o bring_v some_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o arabic_a canon_n and_o the_o decree_n as_o if_o the_o nicene_n council_n assert_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o those_o arabic_a canon_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n be_v but_o late_o as_o they_o say_v bring_v by_o a_o certain_a jesuit_n from_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o those_o various_o publish_v by_o pisanus_n and_o turrian_n in_o which_o be_v eighty_o canon_n whereas_o of_o old_a in_o the_o nicene_n synod_n there_o be_v but_o twenty_o and_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n of_o who_o augustin_n be_v one_o in_o the_o six_o synod_n at_o carthage_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n assure_v that_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n which_o cecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n bring_v from_o nice_a and_o the_o copy_n they_o have_v from_o cyril_n of_o alexandria_n and_o atticus_n of_o constantinople_n have_v not_o the_o canon_n about_o appeal_n to_o rome_n from_o all_o part_n which_o three_o bishop_n of_o rome_n allege_v but_o the_o true_a canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n to_o wit_n the_o five_o and_o the_o six_o be_v against_o the_o arrogate_a power_n about_o appeal_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o vain_a do_v h._n t._n obtrude_v his_o nine_o and_o thirty_o and_o the_o threescore_o and_o five_o can._n arab._n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o for_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v deacon_n to_o give_v the_o eucharist_n presbyter_n be_v present_a which_o he_o bring_v for_o the_o countenance_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o genuine_a word_n of_o the_o canon_n mention_v not_o a_o power_n in_o priest_n as_o he_o term_v they_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n which_o deacon_n have_v not_o but_o a_o restraint_n of_o deacon_n from_o that_o give_v the_o eucharist_n presbyter_n be_v present_a which_o they_o may_v do_v in_o their_o absence_n and_o for_o the_o other_o testimony_n which_o he_o fetch_v out_o of_o the_o decretal_n for_o baptism_n purge_v away_o sin_n and_o the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n they_o be_v of_o no_o validity_n be_v not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n but_o the_o compiler_n of_o the_o canon-law_n who_o thrust_v into_o the_o canon-law_n all_o sort_n of_o determination_n whether_o they_o be_v chaff_n or_o wheat_n genuine_a or_o supposititious_a and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v genuine_a they_o may_v have_v a_o sense_n agree_v with_o protestant_n doctrine_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o first_o constantinopolitan_a council_n against_o macedonius_n which_o decree_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v chief_a next_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n prove_v not_o that_o the_o father_n then_o ascribe_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n such_o a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n as_o now_o the_o pope_n arrogate_v over_o all_o bishop_n but_o the_o contrary_n for_o it_o do_v make_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n a_o chief_a not_o under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o next_o he_o and_o ascribe_v to_o he_o honour_n and_o dignity_n alike_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o in_o order_n of_o mention_v sit_v and_o some_o such_o like_a act_n it_o prefer_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o ephesin_n council_n if_o peter_n be_v define_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o they_o never_o mean_v thereby_o superiority_n and_o power_n over_o they_o but_o priority_n in_o order_n and_o excellency_n in_o virtue_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v sin_n be_v not_o give_v to_o peter_n any_o otherwise_o than_o to_o other_o apostle_n john_n 20._o 23._o in_o the_o three_o action_n say_v h._n t._n pope_n leo_n be_v call_v universal_a archbishop_n and_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o council_n extol_v leo_n yet_o they_o make_v he_o not_o universal_a bishop_n over_o all_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n but_o he_o be_v style_v ecumenical_a archbishop_n of_o old_a rome_n not_o by_o the_o council_n but_o by_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o council_n which_o yet_o do_v give_v it_o to_o john_n of_o constantinople_n but_o by_o none_o be_v that_o title_n then_o give_v to_o either_o in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o now_o the_o pope_n claim_v it_o for_o that_o very_a council_n do_v ascribe_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equal_a privilege_n or_o segniory_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o the_o gainsay_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n which_o determination_n be_v again_o confirm_v in_o the_o six_o synod_n at_o constantinople_n in_o trullo_n in_o the_o six_o age._n the_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n be_v give_v to_o any_o of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o give_v to_o they_o as_o ascribe_v to_o they_o supremacy_n &_o power_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n as_o afterward_o john_n of_o constantinople_n affect_v the_o title_n and_o boniface_n of_o rome_n usurp_v it_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n but_o it_o be_v give_v to_o each_o of_o the_o patriarch_n for_o their_o eminency_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a care_n of_o the_o church_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o paul_n say_v of_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o upon_o i_o come_v daily_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v therefore_o put_v on_o they_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o city_n and_o amplitude_n of_o the_o rule_n and_o dominion_n which_o be_v exercise_v there_o by_o the_o emperor_n lieutenant_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o city_n have_v the_o advantage_n of_o intelligence_n and_o assistance_n in_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n belong_v to_o many_o church_n in_o a_o large_a compass_n even_o as_o at_o this_o day_n a_o patriarch_n at_o london_n have_v a_o advantage_n for_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n concern_v the_o british_a and_o irish_a church_n the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n much_o follow_v the_o government_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o act_n of_o council_n and_o history_n of_o those_o time_n it_o be_v grant_v that_o in_o the_o five_o age_n pope_n leo_n affect_v the_o extol_n of_o peter_n and_o do_v it_o too_o immoderate_o and_o that_o the_o phrase_n of_o peter_n do_v what_o the_o pope_n do_v be_v in_o use_n and_o this_o prove_v that_o then_o ambition_n have_v creep_v in_o among_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o affect_v of_o vain_a title_n increase_v and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v great_a corruption_n in_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o bishop_n which_o grow_v to_o a_o extreme_a height_n afterward_o yet_o neither_o in_o that_o age_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v that_o power_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o flatterer_n challenge_v ascribe_v unto_o they_o without_o control_n of_o the_o sound_a part_n and_o be_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n oppose_v by_o the_o french_a popish_a church_n and_o some_o other_o that_o which_o be_v add_v by_o h._n t._n of_o the_o council_n of_o eleberis_n in_o spain_n and_o the_o second_o of_o atle_n in_o france_n about_o priest_n abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n or_o else_o to_o be_v degrade_v and_o that_o no_o man_n who_o be_v marry_v can_v be_v make_v a_o priest_n unless_o a_o conversion_n be_v promise_v be_v but_o of_o provincial_a synod_n not_o general_a council_n about_o a_o matter_n only_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n about_o which_o alone_o be_v the_o question_n whether_o he_o can_v prove_v such_o a_o succession_n as_o he_o assert_n in_o all_o age_n beside_o the_o eleberin_n canon_n suppose_v they_o have_v then_o wife_n and_o it_o appear_v that_o till_o than_o they_o do_v use_v they_o and_o that_o there_o be_v marry_v priest_n but_o many_o be_v corrupt_v in_o their_o opinion_n of_o marriage_n by_o the_o debase_v of_o it_o as_o carnal_a and_o extol_v virginity_n as_o meritorious_a begin_v to_o put_v that_o yoke_n on_o
hand_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a that_o he_o may_v have_v to_o give_v to_o he_o that_o needs_o and_o how_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o holy_a order_n who_o be_v like_a to_o the_o institutor_n but_o never_o appoint_v by_o god_n i_o understand_v not_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o those_o day_n demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v no_o holy_a order_n but_o a_o company_n of_o man_n that_o promote_v the_o pope_n usurpation_n and_o injury_n to_o the_o great_a mischief_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o church_n of_o christian_n of_o the_o nation_n convert_v the_o emperor_n cassanes_n with_o innumerable_a tartarian_n be_v not_o convert_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o own_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o faith_n and_o therefore_o be_v no_o witness_n for_o the_o papacy_n in_o the_o fourteen_o age_n ten_o pope_n be_v set_v down_o of_o who_o most_o ●●te_a at_o avignon_n in_o france_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n one_o be_v clement_n the_o five_o who_o chain_v francis_n dandalus_n the_o venetian_a ambassador_n under_o his_o table_n to_o feed_v with_o dog_n and_o lose_v at_o the_o pomp_n of_o his_o coronation_n out_o of_o his_o mitre_n a_o carbuncle_n value_v at_o six_o thousand_o ●●orens_n another_o john_n the_o twenty_o one_o by_z other_o john_n the_o twenty_o second_o who_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n l._n 4._o c._n 14._o confess_v to_o have_v think_v that_o the_o soul_n shall_v not_o see_v god_n till_o after_o the_o resurrection_n though_o he_o add_v a_o cold_a excuse_n as_o if_o he_o may_v so_o think_v then_o without_o danger_n of_o heresy_n because_o no_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n procee_v which_o be_v not_o true_a if_o he_o say_v right_o himself_o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr eccl_n triumph_n c._n 2._o that_o the_o same_o that_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n see_v god_n afore_o the_o resurrection_n teach_v innocent_a the_o three_o who_o be_v one_o hundred_o year_n before_o john_n the_o twenty_o one_o by_o h._n t._n his_o account_n c._n apostolicam_fw-la extra_fw-la de_fw-la presbytero_fw-la non_fw-la baptizat●_n however_o if_o there_o be_v no_o definition_n it_o prove_v a_o pope_n may_v teach_v heresy_n since_o john_n the_o twenty_o second_o do_v earnest_o press_v this_o on_o the_o parisian_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o rest_n their_o unpeaceableness_n in_o their_o contention_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o among_o themselves_o in_o their_o schism_n in_o which_o one_o pope_n be_v set_v up_o against_o another_o divers_a pope_n at_o the_o same_o time_n one_o own_v by_o one_o another_o by_o another_o make_v the_o succession_n so_o uncertain_a that_o even_o the_o romanist_n disagree_v in_o the_o succession_n some_o put_n in_o clement_n the_o seven_o in_o this_o age_n who_o h._n t._n leave_v out_o some_o stand_n for_o one_o some_o for_o other_o as_o the_o right_a pope_n beside_o their_o cruelty_n and_o covetousness_n prove_v they_o rather_o butcher_n than_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n h._n t._n add_v one_o general_a council_n of_o vienna_n father_n three_o hundred_o pope_n clement_n the_o five_o preside_v anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1311._o in_o which_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o council_n define_v baptism_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o infant_n condemn_v the_o begard_n and_o beguines_fw-la who_o hold_v carnal_a lust_n do_v out_o of_o temptation_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n and_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o show_v reverence_n at_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o last_v alone_o be_v against_o protestant_n in_o common_a but_o the_o council_n whether_o provincial_a or_o general_a be_v sway_v by_o a_o proud_a prelate_n clement_n the_o five_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n it_o shall_v make_v such_o decree_n as_o then_o be_v make_v as_o for_o the_o catholic_n professor_n there_o be_v scarce_o a_o man_n of_o any_o note_n but_o iro_n a_o canonist_n who_o profession_n will_v be_v of_o little_a weight_n with_o considerate_a man_n that_o a_o emperor_n of_o russia_n if_o make_v a_o christian_a do_v embrace_v the_o romish_a religion_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o likely_a the_o rest_n of_o the_o nation_n convert_v h._n t._n prove_v not_o to_o have_v be_v convert_v from_o rome_n or_o to_o have_v hold_v communion_n with_o the_o pope_n if_o they_o do_v it_o avail_v little_a to_o prove_v h._n t._n his_o minor_n that_o such_o rude_a people_n do_v so_o sect_n xii_o the_o defect_n of_o h._n t._n his_o catalogue_n in_o the_o fiftenth_n and_o sixteen_o age_n be_v show_v in_o the_o fifteen_o age_n he_o reckon_v up_o thirteen_o pope_n as_o chief_a pastor_n in_o which_o number_n he_o leave_v out_o benedict_n the_o thirteen_o though_o reckon_v by_o other_o who_o with_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o uphold_v a_o schism_n of_o three_o pope_n together_o till_o they_o with_o john_n 22._o or_o 23._o for_o divers_a intolerable_a villainy_n be_v depose_v as_o eugenius_n the_o four_o be_v after_o at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n of_o the_o rest_n scarce_o any_o of_o worth_n beside_o pius_n the_o second_o who_o write_n remain_v under_o the_o name_n of_o aeneas_n silvius_n and_o the_o last_o be_v alexander_n the_o six_o roderique_n borgia_n who_o with_o his_o son_n caesar_n borgia_n be_v so_o infamous_a for_o poison_n covetousness_n and_o uncleanness_n of_o body_n that_o rome_n though_o the_o sink_n of_o wickedness_n yet_o yield_v few_o or_o none_o worse_o in_o any_o age._n h._n t._n tell_v we_o of_o two_o general_a council_n that_o of_o constance_n anno_fw-la 1415._o against_o john_n wickliff_n john_n hus_n and_o hierom_n of_o prague_n pope_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o and_o martin_n the_o five_o preside_v but_o the_o main_a end_n of_o its_o call_n by_o sigismond_n the_o emperor_n be_v the_o compose_n of_o the_o trouble_n by_o three_o pope_n together_o who_o it_o depose_v and_o decree_v the_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v against_o the_o now_o roman_a faith_n it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o they_o condemn_v sundry_a article_n of_o john_n wickliff_n john_n hus_n and_o hierom_n of_o prague_n whereof_o some_o be_v most_o false_o ascribe_v to_o they_o as_o the_o work_n of_o john_n wickliff_n and_o other_o testimony_n do_v show_v and_o notwithstanding_o the_o safe_a conduct_n give_v by_o sigismond_n the_o emperor_n to_o the_o perpetual_a infamy_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n they_o judge_v he_o be_v to_o deliver_v john_n hus_n to_o be_v burn_v sess_z 19_o whereupon_o the_o emperor_n solemn_a faith_n be_v break_v and_o thereupon_o they_o be_v burn_v and_o wickliffs_n bone_n as_o they_o imagine_v forty_o year_n after_o his_o death_n be_v dig_v up_o and_o burn_v in_o england_n and_o a_o most_o impious_a decree_n make_v that_o notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v institution_n and_o administer_a in_o both_o kind_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o faithful_a in_o both_o kind_n yet_o the_o custom_n be_v confirm_v of_o receive_v in_o one_o and_o the_o require_v it_o in_o both_o judge_v a_o error_n and_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o be_v give_v the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n sess_z 13._o the_o other_o council_n h._n t._n mention_n be_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n father_n 145._o pope_n eugenius_n preside_v anno_fw-la 1439._o against_o many_o heresy_n which_o define_v pugatory_n the_o pope_n headship_n transubstantiation_n the_o apocryphal_a book_n canonical_a the_o grecian_n jacobite_n armenian_n and_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n subscribe_v this_o council_n and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o this_o council_n however_o it_o have_v a_o show_n of_o great_a authority_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o some_o other_o of_o the_o eastern_a christian_a church_n yet_o indeed_o it_o be_v of_o no_o authority_n it_o be_v get_v together_o by_o a_o faction_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n which_o be_v decree_v by_o pope_n martin_n the_o five_o to_o be_v ten_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v to_o divert_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n from_o depose_v eugenius_n the_o four_o from_o his_o popedom_n which_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v for_o his_o ill_a government_n and_o choose_v amadeus_n duke_n of_o savoy_n who_o be_v name_v felix_n the_o five_o who_o be_v omit_v therefore_o by_o h._n t._n though_o by_o other_o count_v the_o lawful_a pope_n but_o h._n t._n think_v it_o best_a to_o omit_v he_o and_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n which_o together_o with_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n have_v determine_v that_o a_o general_a council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o but_o may_v depose_v he_o as_o the_o french_a church_n yet_o to_o this_o day_n do_v hold_v so_o that_o they_o who_o be_v term_v
he_o have_v seven_o thousand_o at_o that_o time_n in_o israel_n where_o he_o be_v therefore_o elias_n speak_v figurative_o when_o he_o complain_v he_o be_v leave_v alone_o 3_o king_n 19_o nay_o the_o contrary_n follow_v that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v figurative_o because_o god_n correct_v he_o and_o show_v his_o mistake_n in_o say_v he_o be_v leave_v alone_o that_o be_v there_o be_v no_o more_o beside_o himself_o leave_v 2._o but_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o speech_n be_v figurative_a and_o the_o meaning_n as_o h._n t._n will_v have_v it_o it_o no_o whit_n avoid_v our_o objection_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n though_o consist_v of_o seven_o thousand_o yet_o be_v so_o obscure_a that_o they_o appear_v so_o few_o to_o elias_n as_o that_o he_o take_v himself_o to_o be_v leave_v alone_o as_o for_o the_o other_o exception_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n it_o take_v not_o away_o the_o objection_n as_o the_o protestant_n frame_v it_o but_o as_o h._n t._n frame_v it_o it_o be_v not_o our_o objection_n and_o so_o though_o the_o consequence_n be_v false_a yet_o it_o hurt_v not_o we_o who_o gather_v not_o hence_o the_o fail_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o obscurity_n of_o it_o and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v so_o hide_a that_o it_o be_v not_o discern_v at_o some_o time_n no_o not_o by_o such_o a_o eminent_a prophet_n as_o elias_n and_o so_o though_o we_o can_v show_v our_o church_n in_o every_o age_n before_o luther_n yet_o there_o may_v be_v then_o and_o we_o may_v be_v now_o a_o true_a church_n for_o all_o that_o the_o next_o objection_n he_o bring_v be_v that_o though_o arian_n heresy_n infect_v the_o whole_a world_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o answer_n you_o mistake_v the_o fury_n of_o that_o last_v not_o full_a fou●_n year_n viz._n from_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n to_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n and_o that_o only_a in_o the_o eastern_a church_n the_o western_a feel_n little_a or_o nothing_o by_o it_o st._n augustin_n answer_v the_o donatist_n object_v the_o same_o that_o even_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v this_o custom_n that_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o when_o it_o reach_v home_o only_o to_o some_o few_o epist_n 48._o to_o which_o i_o reply_v if_o the_o arian_n fury_n last_v but_o four_o year_n and_o in_o the_o eastern_a church_n only_o yet_o it_o may_v have_v be_v more_o than_o one_o hundred_o and_o then_o the_o succession_n have_v cease_v and_o the_o eastern_a church_n than_o be_v so_o obscure_a that_o a_o catalogue_n of_o professor_n can_v not_o be_v give_v though_o there_o be_v doubtless_o then_o true_a church_n in_o the_o east_n but_o it_o be_v false_a which_o h._n t._n write_v that_o the_o western_a feel_v little_a or_o nothing_o by_o the_o arian_n fury_n for_o in_o italy_n the_o arian_n prevail_v so_o far_o as_o to_o bring_v liberius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n nor_o do_v i_o know_v how_o the_o word_n of_o augustin_n yield_v any_o thing_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n prevalency_n the_o church_n be_v so_o obscure_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n seem_v to_o be_v arian_n therefore_o the_o church_n succession_n may_v be_v so_o interrupt_v or_o obscure_v at_o least_o as_o that_o a_o catalogue_n of_o its_o pastor_n and_o professor_n at_o all_o time_n can_v be_v frame_v for_o suppose_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o speech_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o word_n concern_v the_o number_n of_o arian_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o when_o they_o reach_v home_o only_o to_o some_o few_o yet_o if_o the_o word_n show_v the_o number_n so_o great_a as_o that_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v obscure_v so_o as_o not_o to_o be_v discern_v they_o serve_v to_o prove_v there_o may_v be_v church_n which_o be_v so_o hide_v as_o that_o a_o catalogue_n can_v be_v frame_v but_o the_o objection_n be_v further_o press_v thus_o object_n st._n hierom_n say_v the_o whole_a world_n groan_v and_o admire_v to_o see_v itself_o become_v arian_n in_o his_o book_n against_o luciferius_fw-la to_o which_o h._n t._n say_v answ_n if_o she_o wonder_v she_o know_v not_o when_o it_o be_v do_v if_o she_o groan_v she_o approve_v it_o not_o be_v do_v therefore_o the_o major_a part_n be_v still_a catholic_n to_o which_o i_o reply_v if_o h._n t._n do_v not_o presume_v he_o shall_v meet_v with_o silly_a reader_n he_o will_v not_o have_v thus_o frivolous_o infer_v from_o those_o word_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o show_v the_o arian_n to_o be_v the_o great_a part_n that_o the_o major_a part_n be_v still_o catholic_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o expression_n be_v rhetorical_a and_o the_o meaning_n this_o that_o arian_n prevail_v so_o much_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v so_o infect_v that_o they_o be_v burden_v with_o arian_n as_o a_o man_n that_o groan_v under_o a_o burden_n and_o that_o on_o such_o a_o sudden_a as_o that_o the_o accident_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n now_o from_o such_o catachrestical_a metaphor_n to_o infer_v as_o if_o they_o be_v proper_a that_o while_o the_o world_n be_v arian_n it_o know_v not_o it_o be_v do_v or_o approve_v it_o not_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o say_v when_o they_o be_v arian_n they_o know_v not_o nor_o like_v arian_n doctrine_n that_o be_v while_o they_o be_v arian_n they_o be_v not_o arian_n which_o be_v to_o make_v hieroms_n speech_n self-contradicting_a but_o h._n t._n add_v let_v st._n hierom_n answer_v for_o himself_o the_o bishop_n say_v he_o against_o luciferius_fw-la that_o do_v the_o fact_n of_o ariminum_n be_v delude_v viz._n by_o the_o new_a creed_n there_o make_v which_o may_v have_v bear_v a_o good_a sense_n few_o defend_v the_o fact_n and_o some_o lament_v it_o and_o st._n augustin_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n than_o appear_v in_o she_o most_o constant_a member_n athanasius_n and_o other_o ep_n 48._o to_o which_o i_o reply_v it_o be_v true_a that_o when_o they_o come_v to_o see_v their_o error_n they_o do_v lament_v it_o yet_o be_v for_o the_o time_n arian_n and_o though_o athanasius_n do_v not_o yield_v to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o yet_o liberlus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v and_o i_o believe_v h._n t._n his_o fellow_n papist_n will_v not_o allow_v his_o speech_n that_o the_o decree_v make_v at_o ariminum_n may_v have_v bear_v a_o good_a sense_n it_o be_v add_v by_o h._n t._n thus_o obj._n the_o church_n will_v fail_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n according_a to_o that_o unless_o there_o come_v a_o revolt_n first_o etc._n etc._n 2_o thes_n 2._o 3._o answ_n no_o she_o will_v not_o she_o shall_v then_o suffer_v great_a persecution_n apoc._n 20._o 8._o and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v to_o suffer_v many_o will_v revolt_v all_o shall_v not_o i_o reply_v that_o if_o the_o revolt_n be_v of_o so_o many_o and_o the_o persecution_n so_o great_a as_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v disperse_v and_o obscure_v so_o as_o not_o to_o appear_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o succession_n to_o be_v then_o either_o so_o interrupt_v as_o not_o to_o be_v or_o so_o obscure_v as_o not_o to_o be_v discern_v by_o enemy_n or_o brethren_n further_o off_o and_o so_o as_o that_o the_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o pastor_n and_o professor_n in_o that_o age_n can_v be_v expect_v just_o from_o the_o church_n in_o after_o age_n which_o be_v enough_o for_o our_o purpose_n to_o show_v that_o the_o defect_n of_o such_o a_o catalogue_n show_v not_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n nor_o be_v with_o any_o justice_n or_o reason_n such_o a_o catalogue_n of_o pastor_n and_o professor_n in_o all_o age_n require_v of_o they_o by_o papist_n yet_o however_o this_o author_n conceive_v his_o fellow_n the_o rhemist_n annot._n on_o 2_o thes_n 2._o 3._o think_v the_o apostasy_n shall_v be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v pull_v down_o general_o all_o kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n save_v that_o which_o must_v be_v do_v to_o himself_o alone_o nor_o be_v that_o apoc._n 20._o 8._o to_o the_o contrary_n for_o neither_o be_v it_o certain_a that_o time_n be_v the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v nor_o if_o it_o be_v do_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o thing_n do_v be_v afore_o the_o end_n of_o that_o reign_n but_o h._n t._n add_v obj._n what_o if_o man_n will_v not_o persevere_v how_o then_o you_o hold_v freewill_n i_o hope_v answ_n with_o st._n augustine_n to_o the_o donatist_n as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ignorant_a what_o will_v be_v the_o freewill_n of_o man_n which_o yet_o foresee_v he_o foretell_v that_o the_o church_n
of_o christ_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 12._o i_o reply_v what_o protestant_a have_v thus_o object_v i_o know_v not_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n cease_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o act_n of_o freewill_n to_o be_v undetermined_a or_o undeterminable_a by_o god_n nor_n do_v the_o answer_n avoid_v it_o for_o though_o if_o the_o answer_n be_v good_a the_o futurition_n of_o the_o church_n fail_v follow_v not_o from_o the_o hold_n of_o freewill_n yet_o it_o show_v not_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v and_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o he_o to_o avoid_v the_o objection_n that_o if_o man_n will_v be_v not_o determine_v by_o god_n decree_n which_o be_v mean_v by_o freewill_n among_o that_o sort_n of_o writer_n then_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v foresee_v that_o the_o church_n militant_a will_v endure_v for_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o reason_n impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v certain_a foresight_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o certain_a to_o be_v afore_o that_o act_n of_o freewill_n in_o man_n which_o god_n himself_o can_v determine_v a_o certain_a prescience_n of_o that_o which_o be_v pure_o contingent_a may_v be_v or_o not_o be_v before_o it_o notwithstanding_o any_o purpose_n in_o god_n be_v according_a to_o all_o principle_n of_o reason_n impossible_a if_o this_o author_n hold_v with_o many_o of_o the_o romanist_n man_n freewill_n not_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o god_n decree_n and_o influx_n on_o the_o will_n of_o man_n or_o the_o jesuit_n middle_a knowledge_n he_o have_v enough_o of_o papist_n to_o oppose_v he_o i_o have_v sufficient_o show_v the_o futility_n of_o his_o dispute_n in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o his_o manual_n the_o second_o follow_v artic_a ii_o protestant_n succession_n sufficient_a protestant_n have_v that_o succession_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n sect_n i._o protestant_n church_n need_v not_o prove_v such_o a_o succession_n as_o papist_n demand_n art_fw-la 2._o h._n t._n thus_o dispute_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n and_o shall_v have_v from_o hence_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v but_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o so_o of_o all_o other_o sectary_n have_v not_o a_o continue_a succession_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n the_o minor_a which_o only_o remain_v unprove_v be_v clear_v by_o the_o concession_n of_o our_o most_o learned_a adversary_n who_o free_o and_o unanimous_o confess_v that_o before_o luther_n make_v his_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o nine_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v catholic_n and_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v no_o protestant_n any_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o hear_v of_o let_v therefore_o our_o enemy_n be_v our_o judge_n calvin_n hospinian_n white_n norton_n bancroft_n jewel_n chamier_n brochard_n whitaker_n bucer_n perkins_n bale_n voyon_n bibliander_n answ_n it_o have_v not_o be_v prove_v that_o every_o true_a church_n of_o god_n have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n many_o true_a church_n have_v have_v no_o predecessor_n and_o so_o no_o succession_n the_o primitive_a church_n certain_o have_v not_o succession_n there_o be_v none_o before_o they_o they_o have_v not_o be_v primitive_a if_o there_o have_v be_v precedent_n and_o sundry_a church_n have_v be_v true_a church_n who_o have_v have_v none_o after_o they_o in_o the_o same_o place_n when_o their_o candlestick_n have_v be_v remove_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o false_a which_o he_o here_o vain_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n mean_v every_o true_a church_n of_o god_n without_o which_o his_o major_n be_v not_o universal_a and_o so_o his_o syllogism_n naught_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a succession_n mean_v without_o interruption_n of_o person_n which_o may_v be_v name_v in_o the_o same_o place_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n in_o every_o point_n which_o be_v his_o meaning_n and_o be_v only_o for_o his_o purpose_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n he_o have_v not_o prove_v it_o no_o not_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o in_o those_o that_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o under_o the_o pope_n nor_o have_v he_o prove_v at_o all_o that_o every_o true_a visible_a church_n on_o earth_n shall_v have_v such_o a_o continue_a succession_n from_o hence_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o prophecy_n he_o allege_v be_v show_v not_o to_o speak_v what_o he_o aver_v and_o for_o his_o minor_n though_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n under_o that_o name_n as_o so_o term_v have_v not_o be_v ancient_a yet_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o faith_n they_o hold_v have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o have_v continue_v as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o persecution_n sometime_o more_o sometime_o less_o pure_a sometime_o large_a sometime_o small_a sometime_o more_o obscure_a sometime_o more_o conspicuous_a sometime_o in_o one_o place_n sometime_o in_o another_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o protestation_n against_o popish_a doctrine_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n transubstantiation_n half-communion_n propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o other_o popish_a error_n it_o have_v have_v church_n and_o person_n who_o have_v as_o they_o have_v be_v urge_v on_o they_o oppose_v they_o sometime_o more_o sometime_o few_o sometime_o in_o a_o more_o open_a sometime_o in_o a_o more_o secret_a way_n as_o persecution_n permit_v and_o god_n stir_v up_o their_o spirit_n it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o the_o most_o learned_a adversary_n of_o the_o romanist_n do_v free_o and_o unanimous_o confess_v that_o before_o luther_n make_v his_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o nine_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v catholic_n and_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v no_o protestant_n any_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o hear_v of_o sure_o the_o grecian_n be_v part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o h._n t._n himself_o confess_v here_o pag._n 48._o there_o be_v a_o revolt_n of_o they_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n after_o seven_o or_o eight_o hundred_o year_n and_o they_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n sess_z last_o which_o himself_o say_v p._n 34_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1439._o so_o that_o by_o his_o own_o account_n their_o revolt_n be_v six_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o beside_o what_o be_v manifest_a of_o the_o arminian_n and_o other_o and_o sure_o the_o hussites_n wicklevist_n waldenses_n and_o those_o who_o go_v before_o they_o who_o rainerius_n say_v some_o count_v to_o have_v be_v from_o pope_n sylvester_n be_v time_n some_o from_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o many_o protestant_n illyricus_n fox_n white_n with_o other_o deny_v to_o have_v obey_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n afore_o luther_n and_o aver_v that_o they_o be_v though_o not_o in_o name_n yet_o in_o truth_n protestant_n in_o some_o at_o least_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n against_o the_o now_o popish_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o h._n t._n have_v recite_v in_o this_o speech_n be_v manifest_a untruth_n yea_o dr._n richard_n field_n a_o learned_a man_n in_o his_o appendix_n to_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n have_v prove_v it_o notwithstanding_o brere_o his_o wonderment_n that_o the_o western_a church_n afore_o luther_n be_v protestant_n and_o the_o maintainer_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a faith_n only_o a_o faction_n in_o it_o and_o mr._n perkins_n have_v demonstrate_v in_o his_o demonstration_n of_o the_o problem_n this_o position_n no_o apostle_n no_o holy_a father_n no_o sound_a catholik_n for_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v ever_o hold_v or_o profess_v that_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o principle_n and_o ground_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v now_o teach_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o authorize_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o do_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o protestant_a writer_n amount_v to_o that_o which_o he_o produce_v they_o for_o he_o himself_o allege_v p._n 41._o out_o of_o augustin_n epist_n 48._o that_o even_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v this_o custom_n that_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o when_o it_o reach_v home_o only_o to_o some_o few_o and_o thereby_o he_o will_v interpret_v the_o complaint_n that_o be_v make_v of_o the_o whole_a world_n become_v arian_n
and_o the_o soul_n detain_v there_o be_v help_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a nor_o that_o the_o saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o pray_v unto_o nor_o their_o relic_n to_o be_v worship_v nor_o that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n always_o a_o virgin_n and_o other_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o retain_v and_o that_o to_o they_o honour_n and_o veneration_n be_v to_o be_v give_v nor_o that_o the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n such_o as_o the_o pope_n grant_v be_v leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o the_o use_n thereof_o be_v most_o wholesome_a to_o christ_n people_n nor_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n nor_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n nor_o that_o true_a obedience_n be_v to_o be_v vow_v and_o swear_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o that_o he_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n nor_o that_o peter_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o let_v they_o name_v the_o pope_n council_n or_o father_n for_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n for_o they_o hold_v not_o these_o point_n papist_n pretence_n to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n be_v very_o idle_a because_o be_v it_o true_a as_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o those_o father_n be_v papist_n yet_o can_v not_o that_o suffice_v to_o prove_v they_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n second_o because_o those_o of_o the_o six_o age_n must_v needs_o know_v better_a what_o be_v the_o religion_n and_o tenet_n of_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o five_o age_n by_o who_o they_o be_v instruct_v and_o with_o who_o they_o daily_o converse_v than_o our_o modern_a papist_n can_v now_o do_v and_o they_o have_v not_o protest_v on_o their_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o now_o popish_a doctrine_n nor_o that_o they_o receive_v it_o from_o they_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o so_o from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o final_o because_o if_o our_o tenet_n in_o which_o we_o differ_v from_o papist_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n than_o it_o be_v whole_o impossible_a they_o shall_v be_v for_o papist_n and_o against_o we_o but_o our_o doctrine_n in_o which_o we_o differ_v from_o papist_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n shall_v be_v for_o papist_n and_o against_o we_o the_o major_n be_v manifest_a of_o itself_o the_o minor_a be_v prove_v 1._o by_o what_o have_v be_v already_o cite_v out_o of_o those_o father_n as_o also_o by_o what_o shall_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o they_o in_o the_o follow_a dispute_n 2._o by_o the_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o catholic_n concord_n cap._n 13._o say_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o universal_a bishop_n but_o the_o first_o above_o or_o among_o other_o cardinal_n bessarion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o read_v that_o these_o two_o only_a sacrament_n be_v deliver_v plain_o in_o the_o gospel_n cardinal_n cajetan_n tract_n de_fw-fr indulg_n cap._n 1._o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n find_v touch_v the_o beginning_n of_o indulgence_n there_o be_v no_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n greek_n or_o latin_a that_o bring_v it_o to_o our_o knowledge_n durand_n in_o lib._n 4._o scent_n do_v 20._o cue_n 3._o of_o indulgence_n few_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o certainty_n because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o express_o of_o they_o cardinal_n fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n assert_v luth._o confess_v art_n 18._o pag._n 86._o touch_v purgatory_n there_o be_v very_o little_a mention_n or_o none_o at_o all_o among_o the_o ancient_a as_o the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n believe_v it_o not_o which_o word_n be_v cite_v by_o polyd._n virgil._n lib._n 8._o the_o invent_v rerum_fw-la cap._n 1._o cardinal_n bellarmine_n lib._n 5._o the_o just_a cap_n 7._o for_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n and_o for_o avoid_v of_o vainglory_n it_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o safe_a to_o repose_v our_o whole_a confidence_n in_o the_o alone_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n cardinal_n cajetan_n in_o 3._o part_n 2._o th._n qu._n 80._o art_n 12._o cue_n 3._o the_o custom_n of_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o wine_n endure_v long_o in_o the_o church_n georg._n cass_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o his_o book_n entitle_v de_fw-fr officio_fw-la pii_fw-la viri_fw-la say_v the_o use_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n together_o with_o his_o body_n in_o the_o minister_a of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v both_o of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o observe_v by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o unto_o this_o day_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o although_o the_o use_n of_o one_o kind_n come_v up_o about_o the_o year_n 1200._o yet_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o those_o time_n never_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a so_o to_o be_v observe_v tonstal_v bishop_n of_o durhom_n de_fw-fr verit_fw-la corp_n &_o sanguinis_fw-la p._n 46._o till_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v free_a for_o all_o man_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o conjecture_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n polydore_n virgil._n de_fw-la invent_v rer_n l._n 6._o 13._o afore_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la put_v they_o out_o have_v these_o word_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierom_n it_o appear_v how_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n cassand_n consult_v do_fw-mi de_fw-fr imag_n it_o be_v very_o manifest_a out_o of_o augustin_n write_v on_o psal_n 113._o that_o in_o his_o age_n the_o use_n of_o image_n in_o church_n be_v not_o claudius_n espencaeus_fw-la a_o bishop_n in_o tit._n c._n 1._o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o want_n of_o other_o priests_z be_v marry_v greg._n de_fw-fr val._n tom_n 4._o disp_n 9_o punct_a 5._o sect_n 9_o with_o other_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o the_o apostle_n death_n priest_n have_v their_o wife_n harding_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o jewel_n on_o the_o three_o article_n very_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v necessary_a when_o the_o faith_n be_v in_o learning_n and_o therefore_o the_o prayer_n be_v make_v then_o in_o a_o common_a know_a tongue_n to_o the_o people_n for_o cause_n of_o their_o further_a instruction_n who_o be_v of_o late_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o painim_n make_v christian_n have_v need_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v teach_v john_n hart_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n before_o the_o conference_n with_o dr._n rainold_n in_o the_o tower_n in_o truth_n i_o think_v that_o although_o the_o spiritual_a power_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o temporal_a yet_o they_o be_v both_o of_o god_n neither_o do_v the_o one_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o whereupon_o i_o gather_v as_o a_o certain_a conclusion_n that_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o who_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v a_o temporal_a lord_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v unreasonable_a and_o improbable_a altogether_o for_o he_o have_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o they_o or_o they_o civil_o much_o less_o to_o depose_v they_o or_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n that_o be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o commission_n he_o have_v in_o my_o judgement_n the_o fatherhood_n of_o the_o church_n not_o a_o princehood_n of_o the_o world_n christ_n himself_o take_v no_o such_o title_n on_o he_o nor_o give_v it_o to_o peter_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o disciple_n bishop_n jewel_n challenge_v and_o performance_n be_v know_v bishop_n morton_n catholic_n apology_n and_o appeal_n beside_o many_o other_o book_n be_v extant_a by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v plain_o discern_v that_o papist_n have_v not_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n for_o they_o and_o that_o even_o the_o learned_a writer_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n have_v vent_v so_o much_o in_o their_o write_n as_o yield_v a_o apology_n for_o protestant_n in_o all_o or_o many_o of_o the_o point_n in_o difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o papist_n sect_n iii_o protestant_n have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a succession_n to_o aver_v their_o doctrine_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n but_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o h._n t._n his_o argument_n 1._o by_o deny_v his_o syllogism_n to_o
be_v right_a as_o have_v these_o word_n add_v in_o the_o minor_fw-la or_o tenet_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o major_n whereby_o there_o be_v a_o four_o term_n which_o make_v a_o syllogism_n naught_o 2._o by_o deny_v his_o major_n and_o as_o a_o reason_n of_o that_o denial_n i_o say_v agreement_n of_o doctrine_n with_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n though_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o priest_n be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o true_a church_n and_o such_o succession_n as_o h._n t._n require_v be_v not_o necessary_a 3._o to_o the_o minor_a though_o protestant_n have_v not_o a_o continue_a number_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n succeed_v one_o another_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n or_o tenet_n the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n or_o any_o other_o set_v number_n of_o tenet_n express_o hold_v and_o deny_v all_o the_o same_o point_n yet_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o christian_a worship_n and_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n in_o all_o age_n hitherto_o of_o christian_a professor_n hold_v the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o fundamental_o although_o sometime_o more_o pure_o and_o conspicuous_o than_o at_o other_o time_n and_o they_o have_v oppose_v though_o not_o with_o the_o like_a success_n agreement_n or_o largeness_n in_o every_o age_n the_o popish_a error_n now_o avouch_v in_o pope_n pius_fw-la the_o four_o his_o creed_n and_o the_o trent_n canon_n and_o for_o answer_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o major_a i_o deny_v that_o the_o major_n proceed_v from_o the_o definition_n to_o the_o thing_n define_v he_o continue_v number_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n succeed_v one_o another_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n be_v not_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o continue_a succession_n necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v before_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o former_a article_n sect_n 4._o 5._o and_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a i_o answer_v that_o protestant_n may_v have_v true_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o may_v be_v esteem_v christian_n and_o catholic_n though_o they_o differ_v in_o many_o material_a point_n as_o long_o as_o they_o hold_v the_o same_o fundamental_a point_n and_o protestant_n oppose_v all_o or_o some_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o they_o arise_v and_o be_v discover_v to_o they_o though_o they_o do_v not_o discern_v all_o their_o error_n nor_o relinquish_v all_o their_o practice_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rule_n but_o they_o be_v true_o protestant_n however_o otherwise_o name_v while_o they_o do_v hold_v the_o same_o fundamental_a truth_n we_o hold_v and_o oppose_v as_o they_o appear_v to_o they_o all_z or_o some_o of_o the_o popish_a corrupt_a worship_n and_o error_n which_o the_o protestant_n now_o do_v and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o we_o right_o name_v the_o waldenses_n hussites_n wicklevist_n albigenses_n puritan_n waldenses_n beringarians_n grecian_n of_o who_o writer_n testify_v they_o except_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n purgatory_n half_a communion_n transubstantiation_n set_v up_o and_o worship_n of_o image_n propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n decease_v seven_o sacrament_n with_o other_o error_n of_o the_o now_o romanist_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o worship_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o now_o protestant_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o confession_n and_o write_n of_o their_o own_o either_o extant_a or_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o history_n and_o write_n of_o their_o adversary_n such_o as_o be_v rainerius_n aeneas_n silvius_n cochlaeus_fw-la and_o other_o see_v samuel_n morland_n history_n of_o the_o evangelical_n church_n in_o piedmont_n the_o first_o book_n by_o which_o their_o confession_n and_o treatise_n be_v bring_v to_o light_v agree_v with_o protestant_n what_o h._n t._n bring_v against_o this_o be_v either_o false_o ascribe_v to_o they_o by_o the_o calumny_n of_o their_o adversary_n who_o recital_n of_o their_o opinion_n to_o the_o worst_a sense_n no_o man_n have_v reason_n to_o believe_v especial_o consider_v their_o work_n extant_a do_v refute_v they_o and_o it_o have_v be_v often_o complain_v of_o that_o they_o have_v be_v misinterpret_v and_o misreport_v or_o else_o if_o true_a be_v insufficient_a to_o invalidate_v our_o allegation_n of_o they_o h._n t._n tell_v we_o the_o waldenses_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v lay_v man_n that_o all_o magistrate_n fall_v from_o their_o dignity_n by_o any_o mortal_a sin_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o swear_v in_o any_o case_n etc._n etc._n illiricus_fw-la in_o catalogue_n walden_v confess_v bohem._n a._n 1._o and_o waldo_n a_o unlearned_a merchant_n of_o lion_n live_v but_o in_o the_o year_n 1160._o answ_n sure_o he_o be_v not_o altogether_o unlearned_a of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v by_o some_o that_o have_v see_v his_o do_n yet_o remain_v in_o old_a parchment_n monument_n that_o it_o appear_v he_o be_v both_o able_a to_o declare_v and_o to_o translate_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n also_o do_v collect_v the_o doctor_n minas_fw-la upon_o the_o same_o yet_o be_v he_o unlearned_a sure_o he_o have_v store_n of_o companion_n among_o the_o romanist_n friar_n bishop_n and_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n by_o one_o of_o who_o a_o bishop_n be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n for_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v antipode_n and_o paul_n the_o second_o say_v platina_n pronounce_v they_o heretic_n who_o shall_v from_o thence_o forth_o mention_v the_o name_n of_o the_o academy_n either_o in_o earnest_n or_o in_o jest_n the_o very_a decree_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o their_o canon_n law_n show_v that_o few_o of_o they_o have_v any_o skill_n in_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o original_a language_n competent_a to_o divine_n and_o who_o so_o read_v their_o write_n observe_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o able_a of_o their_o schoolman_n in_o those_o day_n be_v very_o ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n and_o language_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v the_o pope_n and_o generality_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o preacher_n among_o the_o romanist_n at_o this_o day_n be_v man_n of_o much_o learning_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o that_o i_o presume_v waldus_n as_o unlearned_a as_o he_o be_v be_v comparable_a to_o the_o roman_a clergy_n at_o that_o time_n in_o learning_n and_o for_o holiness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o relation_n even_o of_o popish_a writer_n exceed_v they_o as_o much_o as_o gold_n exceed_v lead_v and_o therefore_o as_o likely_a to_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n as_o any_o pope_n or_o bishop_n or_o friar_n at_o that_o time_n now_o clear_v it_o be_v by_o a_o ancient_a manuscript_n allege_v by_o the_o magdeburg_n cent_n 12._o c._n 8._o that_o the_o waldenses_n hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_o rail_v in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n father_n and_o council_n no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v receive_v then_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v read_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o sort_n in_o both_o kind_n that_o mass_n be_v impious_a and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n to_o say_v mass_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n to_o be_v a_o figment_n the_o invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o dead_a saint_n to_o be_v idolatry_n the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n marriage_n of_o priest_n to_o be_v lawful_a with_o sundry_a more_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o protestant_a tenet_n against_o papist_n which_o be_v confirm_v because_o much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n aeneas_n silvius_n in_o his_o bohemian_a history_n write_v of_o their_o opinion_n nor_o be_v it_o likely_a they_o hold_v what_o they_o be_v say_v by_o h._n t._n to_o have_v hold_v for_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o dispute_n between_o they_o and_o one_o dr._n austin_n set_v down_o by_o mr._n fox_n act_n and_o monument_n at_o the_o year_n 1179._o out_o of_o orthuinus_n de_fw-fr gratiis_fw-la that_o their_o opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o his_o natural_a body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n but_o not_o after_o the_o same_o
great_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o four_o late_a sure_o the_o two_o last_o less_o deserve_v the_o name_n the_o late_a nicene_n council_n be_v affront_v by_o the_o carolin_n council_n about_o image_n at_o frankford_n and_o the_o eight_o by_o another_o of_o the_o same_o place_n of_o better_a note_n by_o michael_n the_o emperor_n and_o photius_n the_o learned_a parriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o sure_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n monarchy_n but_o live_v and_o die_v in_o contest_v against_o they_o but_o neither_o the_o four_o first_o nor_o the_o four_o last_o do_v ever_o ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o monarchy_n and_o supremacy_n which_o be_v now_o arrogate_a nor_o do_v they_o ever_o receive_v what_o they_o profess_v because_o they_o profess_v it_o nor_o do_v the_o desire_n or_o acceptance_n much_o less_o the_o have_v the_o pope_n approbation_n at_o all_o prove_v any_o authority_n over_o they_o in_o he_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n usual_a to_o seek_v approbation_n of_o man_n who_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o seeker_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o esteem_n for_o prudence_n learning_n and_o other_o quality_n and_o for_o the_o more_o ready_a receipt_n of_o what_o they_o seek_v to_o have_v approve_v but_o the_o council_n determination_n and_o that_o with_o anathema_n to_o the_o gainsayer_n show_v that_o they_o judge_v themselves_o to_o have_v decisive_a power_n without_o the_o pope_n though_o his_o consent_n also_o be_v add_v as_o useful_a for_o some_o purpose_n 3._o say_v h._n t._n the_o first_o revolt_n be_v make_v by_o the_o grecian_n deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o god_n the_o son_n they_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n sess_v last_o answ_n 1._o the_o deny_v of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o god_n the_o son_n be_v show_v to_o be_v a_o error_n only_o in_o manner_n of_o speak_v by_o sir_n richard_n field_n of_o the_o church_n three_o book_n ch_z 1._o and_o other_o learned_a man_n 2._o the_o revolt_n so_o long_o show_v the_o protestant_n have_v predecessor_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o in_o oppose_v the_o usurpation_n and_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n and_o church_n 3._o the_o reconciliation_n at_o florence_n be_v but_o a_o imperfect_a thing_n by_o person_n who_o act_n be_v not_o avow_v afterward_o nor_o do_v the_o union_n hold_v but_o be_v quick_o dissolve_v 4._o the_o council_n of_o florence_n be_v a_o council_n not_o allow_v by_o that_o at_o basil_n as_o be_v only_o of_o a_o faction_n to_o avoid_v the_o question_n of_o pope_n eugenius_n see_v platina_n in_o vita_fw-la eugenii_fw-la 4._o 4._o say_v h._n t._n they_o hold_v transubstantiation_n seven_o sacrament_n unbloody_a sacrifice_n prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a cens_fw-la eccles_n orientalis_fw-la c._n 7_o 10_o 12_o 13_o 21._o answ_n the_o grecian_n hold_v not_o any_o such_o transubstantiation_n as_o whereby_o the_o element_n be_v abolish_v and_o cease_v to_o be_v that_o they_o be_v but_o whereby_o they_o become_v what_o they_o be_v not_o and_o the_o transubstantiation_n they_o hold_v be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o communicant_n into_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o the_o apostle_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v they_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o dr._n field_n prove_v out_o of_o dam._n scen_n cyril_n and_o other_o in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n ch_n 1._o bishop_n jewel_n reply_n to_o harding_n answer_v art_n 10._o nor_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o transubstantiation_n transelementation_n and_o such_o like_a term_n use_v by_o the_o greek_n any_o other_o than_o lofty_a hyperbolical_a speech_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n use_v when_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v crucify_v among_o the_o galatian_n gal._n 3._o 1._o which_o abound_v in_o chrysostome_n pseudo_fw-la dionysius_n areopagita_n etc._n etc._n insomuch_o that_o chrysostom_n sometime_o express_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o if_o it_o be_v sensible_a the_o communicant_n touch_v christ_n body_n see_v his_o blood_n have_v their_o mouth_n make_v red_a by_o it_o suck_v his_o blood_n receive_v he_o into_o our_o house_n with_o more_o of_o the_o like_a as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o chamier_n panstr_n cath_z tom_fw-mi 4._o lib._n 11._o c._n 9_o as_o for_o seven_o sacrament_n the_o greek_n do_v not_o teach_v they_o to_o be_v so_o many_o and_o no_o more_o nor_o the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n any_o otherwise_o then_o by_o it_o to_o mean_v a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n as_o chrysostom_n in_o his_o hom_n on_o the_o ten_o to_o the_o hebrew_n express_v it_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o greek_n use_v such_o prayer_n to_o saint_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v direct_v their_o prayer_n to_o they_o as_o hearer_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o merit_n helper_n to_o they_o that_o call_v on_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a shut_v up_o in_o purgatory_n which_o as_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o roffensis_n the_o greek_n do_v this_o day_n deny_v and_o there_o endure_a punishment_n of_o sense_n for_o deliverance_n thence_o but_o commemorate_v the_o dead_a even_o the_o most_o holy_a martyr_n and_o confessor_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o happy_a resurrection_n and_o acquittal_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n as_o for_o the_o egyptian_a christian_n and_o armenian_n what_o they_o hold_v be_v not_o so_o easy_a to_o know_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o remoteness_n from_o europe_n nor_o what_o succession_n they_o have_v have_v but_o this_o be_v manifest_a enough_o that_o they_o do_v never_o submit_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o their_o head_n except_z what_o be_v do_v at_o florence_n for_o which_o michael_n paleologus_fw-la the_o greek_a emperor_n be_v abhor_v by_o the_o greek_n and_o deny_v burial_n and_o isidor_n archbishop_n of_o kio●ia_n in_o russta_n depose_v and_o put_v to_o death_n or_o by_o some_o obscure_a person_n who_o act_n the_o church_n never_o own_v and_o yet_o there_o do_v not_o appear_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o exclude_v they_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n notwithstanding_o such_o error_n as_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o nor_o to_o question_v their_o succession_n nor_o be_v the_o protestant_n pretence_n to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n idle_a it_o be_v not_o false_a but_o most_o true_a and_o so_o prove_v by_o jewel_n and_o other_o and_o the_o answer_n of_o harding_n and_o other_o romanist_n prove_v insufficient_a that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o most_o material_a point_n protestant_n that_o be_v hold_v otherwise_o than_o the_o romanist_n now_o do_v and_o though_o it_o prove_v not_o a_o succession_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n continue_v yet_o it_o prove_v a_o succession_n of_o so_o long_a continuance_n as_o will_v make_v void_a the_o popish_a claim_n of_o succession_n as_o peculiar_a to_o they_o and_o with_o any_o considerate_a person_n so_o far_o take_v place_n as_o to_o justify_v the_o protestant_n opposition_n against_o the_o modern_a papist_n error_n and_o innovation_n it_o be_v true_a those_o of_o the_o six_o age_n must_v needs_o know_v better_a what_o be_v the_o religion_n and_o tenet_n of_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o five_o age_n by_o who_o they_o be_v instruct_v and_o with_o who_o they_o daily_o converse_v than_o protestant_n can_v now_o do_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v heedful_a intelligent_a and_o mindful_a of_o what_o they_o hear_v but_o what_o they_o leave_v in_o writing_n we_o may_v know_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o experience_n show_v that_o oft_o time_n upon_o mistake_n and_o sometime_o voluntary_o the_o say_n of_o man_n speak_v yea_o sometime_o their_o very_a write_n either_o by_o unskilfulness_n or_o negligence_n or_o fraud_n be_v misreported_n and_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o this_o reason_n of_o the_o acquaintance_n of_o those_o of_o the_o six_o age_n with_o those_o of_o the_o five_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o protestant_n may_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o five_o age_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o six_o but_o that_o those_o of_o the_o six_o age_n have_v protest_v on_o their_o salvation_n that_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n in_o the_o five_o age_n be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o their_o in_o every_o point_n or_o the_o doctrine_n now_o teach_v by_o the_o romanist_n be_v receive_v from_o they_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o so_o from_o age_n to_o age_n be_v not_o true_a yet_o if_o they_o shall_v we_o have_v no_o more_o cause_n to_o credit_v they_o than_o the_o church_n have_v to_o believe_v the_o millenaries_n and_o quartodesiman_n because_o of_o papias_n and_o other_o their_o report_n of_o john_n with_o who_o they_o converse_v sect_n
v._o the_o romanist_n doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v now_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n nor_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o learned_a protestant_n h._n t_o add_v a_o three_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o his_o with_o other_o romanist_n doctrine_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v from_o protestant_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o he_o think_v to_o prove_v by_o that_o he_o have_v cite_v and_o shall_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o to_o that_o end_n cite_v some_o speech_n of_o fulk_n kemnitius_n whitgrft_v calvin_n whitaker_n peter_n martyr_n duditius_n rainolds_n jewel_n and_o then_o infer_v triumphant_o therefore_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n be_v not_o for_o protestant_n but_o for_o we_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v utter_o at_o a_o loss_n in_o the_o point_n of_o continue_a succession_n answ_n 1._o what_o be_v before_o cite_v have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v insufficient_a and_o so_o will_v what_o be_v after_o if_o god_n vouchsafe_v i_o time_n and_o strength_n to_o that_o end_n 2._o of_o the_o passage_n cite_v the_o two_o last_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o they_o be_v maimedly_n and_o corrupt_o cite_v the_o speech_n as_o they_o be_v cite_v say_v not_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n teach_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n but_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n by_o their_o say_n without_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o deal_n of_o this_o author_n may_v appear_v i_o shall_v set_v down_o the_o word_n as_o i_o find_v they_o in_o jewel_n apology_n part_n 4._o cap._n 22._o divis_fw-la 3._o for_o where_o these_o man_n bid_v the_o holy_a scripture_n away_o as_o dumb_a and_o fruitless_a and_o procure_v we_o to_o come_v to_o god_n himself_o who_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o their_o council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o believe_v their_o fancy_n and_o opinion_n this_o way_n find_v out_o the_o truth_n be_v very_o uncertain_a and_o exceed_v dangerous_a and_o in_o a_o manner_n a_o fantastical_a and_o mad_a way_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n allow_v of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o speech_n be_v a_o most_o true_a and_o savoury_a speech_n yet_o not_o in_o the_o least_o intimate_v a_o diffidence_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n be_v for_o the_o papist_n the_o contrary_a to_o which_o bishop_n jewel_n show_v in_o his_o famous_a challenge_n at_o paul_n cross_n and_o his_o make_n it_o good_a against_o harding_n but_o only_o vindicate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n from_o the_o foul_a speech_n of_o hosius_n pighius_fw-la and_o other_o romanist_n and_o assert_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o other_o passage_n which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o dr._n rainold_n conference_n in_o h._n t._n it_o be_v print_v confess_v cap._n 5._o divis_fw-la 1._o be_v as_o corrupt_o and_o maim_o cite_v the_o word_n be_v thus_o at_o large_a indeed_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n prefer_v this_o mark_n of_o truth_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n before_o the_o rest_n as_o have_v hold_v when_o they_o fail_v nevertheless_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o it_o neither_o as_o that_o it_o may_v serve_v for_o trial_n and_o decision_n of_o question_n between_o we_o for_o what_o do_v he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o point_n approve_v and_o such_o as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v by_o this_o mark_n even_o that_o which_o the_o father_n all_o with_o one_o consent_n have_v hold_v write_v teach_v plain_o common_o continual_o and_o who_o can_v avouch_v of_o any_o point_n in_o question_n that_o not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o the_o father_n hold_v it_o nor_o only_o hold_v it_o but_o also_o write_v it_o nor_o only_o write_v it_o but_o alotaught_a it_o not_o dark_o but_o plain_o not_o seldom_o but_o common_o not_o for_o a_o short_a season_n but_o continual_o which_o so_o great_a consent_n be_v partly_o so_o rare_a and_o so_o hard_a to_o be_v find_v partly_o so_o unsure_a though_o it_o may_v be_v find_v that_o himself_o to_o fashion_v it_o to_o some_o use_n and_o certainty_n be_v fain_o to_o limit_v and_o restrain_v it_o which_o word_n be_v sound_a and_o be_v necessary_a but_o not_o speak_v out_o of_o any_o distrust_n of_o his_o cause_n or_o imagination_n as_o if_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n be_v for_o the_o papist_n for_o in_o that_o very_a conference_n he_o large_o prove_v that_o not_o only_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n but_o also_o the_o succeed_a council_n and_o father_n till_o the_o sixteen_o century_n do_v only_o yield_v the_o pope_n a_o primacy_n among_o other_o patriarch_n but_o not_o a_o supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o primacy_n that_o be_v give_v he_o be_v by_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n which_o be_v auserible_a not_o because_o of_o any_o grant_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v irrevocable_a duditius_n be_v one_o who_o by_o thranus_n his_o description_n of_o he_o hist_o l._n 96._o towards_o the_o end_n martyr_n speech_n respect_v only_o the_o point_n of_o vow_n which_o be_v not_o a_o point_n of_o say_v whitaker_n speech_n be_v not_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n but_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o may_v be_v after_o or_o only_o in_o some_o part_n of_o that_o time_n the_o word_n of_o calvin_n lib_n 3._o instit_n cap._n 5._o parag_v 10._o be_v not_o right_o allege_v be_v not_o together_o as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o but_o injurious_o piece_v out_o of_o speech_n that_o be_v distant_a one_o from_o another_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v nor_o yet_o express_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v by_o the_o adversary_n he_o urge_v that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v without_o scripture_n that_o it_o come_v out_o of_o carnal_a affection_n that_o what_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_n do_v therein_o be_v yield_v to_o the_o common_a manner_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o vulgar_a he_o confess_v they_o be_v carry_v away_o into_o error_n but_o faith_n not_o they_o be_v all_o of_o that_o time_n carry_v away_o into_o error_n that_o same_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n may_v be_v bring_v which_o overthrow_n all_o those_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a that_o their_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o without_o hesitancy_n that_o they_o be_v different_a from_o the_o popish_a in_o divers_a thing_n the_o word_n of_o whitgift_n defense_n pag._n 473._o be_v mis-cited_n be_v not_o as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o all_z the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a writer_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n too_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v spot_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n merit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o thus_o how_o great_o be_v almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a writer_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n yea_o and_o the_o latin_n also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n spot_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n of_o merit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o such_o like_a sure_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o reckon_v in_o any_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n any_o company_n of_o bishop_n that_o teach_v and_o hold_v so_o sound_a and_o perfect_a doctrine_n in_o all_o point_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n do_v at_o this_o time_n the_o word_n of_o kemnitius_n i_o find_v not_o perhaps_o because_o the_o edition_n be_v not_o name_v with_o the_o page_n but_o this_o i_o find_v in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o his_o examen_fw-la pag._n 628._o francos_fw-la edit_fw-la 1609._o that_o he_o not_o only_o assert_v but_o also_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n unto_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n bear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o suffrage_n patronage_n intercession_n merit_n aid_n help_v and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v altogether_o unknown_a and_o the_o reason_n or_o account_v of_o the_o veneration_n of_o saint_n be_v then_o far_o other_o as_o we_o have_v show_v than_o that_o which_o be_v bring_v in_o i_o have_v not_o fulk_n retentives_n against_o bristow_n motive_n by_o i_o which_o i_o imagine_v be_v the_o book_n which_o h._n t._n cite_v under_o the_o title_n of_o riot_n briston_n but_o his_o cite_n with_o a_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o small_a a_o shred_n of_o the_o author_n make_v i_o conceive_v that_o he_o wrong_v fulk_n by_o that_o maim_a citation_n however_o since_o the_o confession_n be_v but_o of_o three_o father_n and_o the_o saint_n whether_o live_v or_o dead_a
preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n nor_o be_v they_o successor_n to_o they_o in_o their_o apostleship_n for_o that_o particular_a office_n cease_v with_o the_o first_o apostle_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o conceit_n of_o succession_n be_v but_o a_o vain_a conceit_n though_o it_o be_v much_o magnify_v by_o h._n t._n and_o other_o romanist_n for_o want_n of_o solid_a proof_n of_o their_o several_a doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n or_o primitive_a antiquity_n i_o go_v on_o to_o the_o next_o article_n artic_a iii_o popish_a church_n visibility_n not_o necessary_a such_o visibility_n of_o succession_n as_o the_o romanist_n require_v be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n sect_n 1._o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o visible_a church_n what_o h._n t._n require_v of_o minister_n preach_v and_o administer_a sacrament_n be_v most_o defective_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n our_o tenet_n say_v h._n t._n be_v that_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o god_n have_v have_v not_o only_o a_o continue_a but_o also_o a_o visible_a succession_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n etc._n etc._n which_o we_o prove_v thus_o 1._o a_o society_n of_o man_n which_o have_v always_o in_o it_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n preach_v baptise_v and_o administer_a sacrament_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v always_o visible_a but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n which_o have_v always_o in_o it_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o ministere_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v always_o visible_a the_o major_n be_v prove_v by_o evident_a reason_n because_o those_o be_v all_o outward_a and_o sensible_a action_n which_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o a_o invisible_a society_n of_o actor_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n go_v you_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n etc._n etc._n st._n matth._n 28._o v._n 20._o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n and_o other_o some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n ephes_n 4._o 11_o 12._o answ_n the_o tenet_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o argument_n differ_v the_o tenet_n assert_v what_o have_v be_v the_o conclusion_n what_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v the_o tenet_n have_v for_o its_o subject_a the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o god_n the_o conclusion_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n indefinite_a and_o both_o tenet_n and_o conclusion_n be_v grant_v but_o not_o in_o this_o author_n and_o other_o romanist_n sense_n it_o be_v grant_v there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n but_o not_o a_o continue_a number_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o laic_n succeed_v one_o another_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n mean_v the_o now_o roman_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o this_o time_n which_o h._n t._n in_o the_o former_a article_n make_v the_o definition_n of_o succession_n and_o visibility_n of_o each_o particular_a church_n be_v grant_v but_o not_o of_o the_o catholic_n as_o catholic_n which_o as_o such_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v not_o see_v and_o this_o visibility_n it_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v of_o some_o at_o some_o time_n not_o in_o the_o same_o splendour_n or_o conspicuity_n at_o all_o time_n nor_o to_o all_o person_n but_o protestant_n deny_v it_o visible_a always_o to_o all_o in_o so_o glorious_a and_o conspicuous_a a_o estate_n as_o bellarmine_n assert_n when_o he_o say_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr eccles_n milit._n cap._n 2._o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o assembly_n of_o man_n so_o visible_a and_o palpable_a as_o be_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n or_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o venetian_n so_o that_o we_o may_v grant_v his_o tenet_n and_o conclusion_n be_v it_o not_o that_o fraudulent_o there_o be_v more_o intend_v than_o be_v express_v which_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v discover_v for_o answer_v to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o major_n be_v grant_v if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o visibility_n simple_o but_o if_o mean_v of_o such_o a_o conspicuous_a visibility_n as_o the_o romanist_n assert_v it_o be_v to_o be_v deny_v in_o the_o minor_a it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o a_o distinction_n be_v make_v between_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n which_o i_o judge_v to_o be_v do_v that_o thereby_o may_v be_v imply_v the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n who_o be_v consecrate_v not_o ordain_v from_o presbyter_n who_o they_o ordain_v not_o consecrate_v to_o have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o right_a 2._o that_o it_o be_v assert_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n which_o have_v always_o in_o it_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n which_o be_v because_o he_o hold_v a_o true_a church_n have_v always_o such_o minister_n but_o as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o be_v not_o true_a no_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o see_v which_o have_v be_v sometime_o long_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n that_o always_o the_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n be_v continue_v and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v intermit_v one_o two_o or_o ten_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n a_o true_a church_n it_o may_v be_v a_o hundred_o and_o therefore_o the_o minor_a be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v if_o mean_v of_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n distinct_a from_o presbyter_n and_o such_o a_o perpetuity_n as_o be_v without_o the_o least_o intermission_n nor_o do_v any_o of_o the_o text_n prove_v it_o for_o the_o precept_n matth._n 28._o 19_o 20._o prove_v only_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o the_o promise_n if_o it_o do_v prove_v that_o a_o succession_n shall_v be_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v such_o a_o succession_n as_o shall_v have_v exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n but_o such_o assistance_n in_o preach_v and_o baptise_v as_o shall_v uphold_v and_o prosper_v they_o in_o that_o work_n nor_o be_v this_o assure_a to_o any_o one_o place_n but_o indefinite_o to_o any_o person_n in_o any_o place_n where_o this_o work_n shall_v be_v continue_v and_o the_o other_o place_n ephes_n 4._o 11_o 12._o prove_v not_o a_o certainty_n of_o the_o event_n which_o be_v assert_v in_o the_o minor_a but_o if_o the_o gift_n be_v mean_v of_o institution_n of_o what_o ou●ht_v to_o be_v it_o note_v only_o a_o certainty_n of_o duty_n if_o of_o donation_n of_o ability_n it_o note_v not_o a_o exterior_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n but_o a_o act_n to_o be_v immediate_o from_o christ_n himself_o or_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o so_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o futurity_n of_o such_o succession_n by_o outward_a consecration_n and_o ordination_n as_o h._n t._n bring_v it_o for_o nevertheless_o this_o author_n do_v disadvantage_n his_o own_o party_n by_o this_o argue_v for_o 1._o by_o this_o argue_v he_o plain_o make_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o it_o be_v visible_a preach_a baptise_v and_o administer_a sacrament_n which_o do_v by_o good_a consequence_n infer_v that_o the_o protestant_n do_v right_o make_v the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o administer_a of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o will_v make_v well_o for_o the_o protestant_n by_o who_o these_o be_v observe_v but_o ill_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n chief_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o neither_o preach_v nor_o baptize_v nor_o administer_v sacrament_n but_o do_v other_o act_n of_o other_o kind_n nor_o to_o speak_v truth_n be_v almost_o any_o of_o their_o preach_v the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n extol_v the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n excellency_n little_a of_o the_o gospel_n or_o if_o any_o part_n of_o it_o it_o be_v likely_a the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o historical_a fashion_n little_a of_o the_o mystery_n but_o in_o stead_n thereof_o such_o doctrine_n of_o humane_a satisfaction_n for_o sin_n merit_n of_o good_a work_n be_v preach_v as_o do_v overthrow_n the_o gospel_n and_o for_o baptise_v though_o bellarmine_n tell_v we_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la bonis_fw-la op_n in_o partic_a cap._n 17._o that_o at_o rome_n the_o old_a custom_n be_v not_o abolish_v of_o baptise_v the_o catechumeni_fw-la at_o easter_n but_o among_o the_o papist_n chief_v in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v no_o year_n in_o which_o many_o catechize_v person_n be_v not_o baptize_v at_o easter_n yet_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v
and_o council_n be_v ambiguous_a as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o be_v often_o in_o the_o decree_n breves_fw-la and_o other_o edict_n of_o pope_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o writer_n on_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o dispute_v about_o the_o council_n and_o pope_n meaning_n in_o which_o be_v so_o many_o ambiguity_n that_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o point_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o many_o opposite_a opinion_n if_o pappus_n have_v overcount_v who_o reckon_v out_o of_o bellarmin_n alone_o two_o hundred_o thirty_o seven_o contradiction_n in_o popish_a writer_n yet_o he_o that_o read_v beauty_n controversy_n shall_v find_v very_o few_o question_n in_o which_o the_o schoolman_n and_o other_o papist_n do_v not_o gainsay_v each_o other_o and_o as_o for_o their_o resolution_n into_o the_o principle_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_n church_n they_o be_v not_o agree_v what_o the_o church_n be_v from_o who_o they_o may_v have_v resolution_n whether_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v with_o they_o the_o church_n virtual_a or_o a_o general_a council_n which_o be_v either_o never_a or_o very_o rare_a which_o they_o call_v the_o church_n representative_a or_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o which_o only_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o require_v all_o papist_n to_o receive_v and_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o yet_o this_o uniform_a consent_n of_o father_n be_v either_o a_o nullity_n it_o be_v scarce_o find_v in_o any_o point_n or_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v know_v h._n t._n by_o his_o word_n pag._n 108._o resolve_n his_o faith_n into_o the_o next_o precedent_n age_n and_o so_o upward_o and_o here_o pag._n 30._o into_o the_o church_n and_o this_o church_n be_v pag._n 70._o not_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o yet_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o catholic_n but_o a_o council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n into_o who_o authority_n they_o final_o resolve_v their_o faith_n for_o though_o they_o pretend_v to_o resolve_v it_o into_o the_o scripture_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o church_n pag._n 109_o 113._o which_o be_v the_o pope_n so_o that_o whatever_o pretence_n they_o make_v of_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n as_o the_o proponent_n or_o god_n as_o the_o author_n in_o conclusion_n they_o acquiesce_v in_o what_o the_o pope_n dictate_v by_o himself_o or_o with_o a_o council_n approve_v by_o he_o as_o for_o the_o scripture_n the_o papist_n be_v not_o all_o agree_v which_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o not_o nor_o can_v they_o set_v down_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o be_v to_o admit_v and_o embrace_v with_o a_o like_a affection_n of_o piety_n as_o the_o write_a word_n as_o the_o trent_n council_n decree_v sess_v 4._o nor_o can_v they_o have_v any_o bottom_n to_o rest_v on_o by_o their_o principle_n sometime_o one_o pope_n and_o one_o council_n cross_v another_o some_o have_v be_v condemn_v in_o general_a council_n as_o heretic_n nor_o can_v they_o tell_v but_o by_o information_n of_o other_o as_o priests_z or_o carrier_n of_o their_o bull_n or_o breves_fw-la which_o be_v many_o of_o they_o not_o only_o fallible_a but_o also_o false_a as_o some_o of_o their_o own_o have_v complain_v what_o the_o pope_n determine_v and_o what_o fraud_n be_v use_v in_o procure_v pope_n bull_n or_o breves_fw-la sometime_o be_v many_o way_n testify_v as_o that_o the_o bull_n of_o pius_n the_o five_o wherein_z queen_n elizabeth_z be_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v be_v get_v in_o a_o fraudulent_a way_n by_o morton_n and_o webb_n 343._o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n from_o the_o report_n of_o other_o what_o the_o pope_n determin_n except_o a_o man_n hear_v he_o preach_v or_o pronounce_v sentence_n or_o see_v he_o write_v and_o seal_v he_o must_v rely_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o that_o may_v and_o be_v like_a enough_o to_o deceive_v nor_o if_o a_o man_n see_v or_o hear_v the_o pope_n decree_n can_v he_o be_v certain_a whether_o he_o speak_v from_o peter_n chair_n or_o determine_v what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n out_o of_o which_o case_n they_o say_v he_o be_v fallible_a or_o give_v his_o opinion_n as_o a_o private_a doctor_n so_o that_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o either_o papist_n agree_v as_o h._n t._n say_v or_o resolve_v themselves_o into_o one_o safe_a and_o most_o unchangeable_a principle_n or_o have_v any_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n or_o have_v god_n himself_o for_o the_o prime_a author_n and_o his_o authority_n the_o formal_a object_n and_o motive_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o their_o faith_n in_o what_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o rest_v only_o on_o man_n saying_n for_o the_o most_o part_n ignorant_a and_o wicked_a for_o such_o have_v be_v most_o of_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n who_o they_o follow_v against_o the_o plain_a and_o confess_v word_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o their_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n worship_v of_o image_n and_o ascribe_v to_o they_o power_n by_o their_o authority_n to_o declare_v new_a scripture_n and_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o make_v the_o scripture_n only_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o of_o the_o church_n determination_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o they_o make_v of_o more_o authority_n than_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o make_v the_o church_n not_o god_n authority_n the_o formal_a motive_n and_o object_n of_o their_o faith_n so_o that_o if_o unity_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o other_o the_o popish_a church_n can_v lay_v least_o claim_n to_o it_o and_o h._n t._n his_o argument_n may_v be_v retort_v the_o catholic_n church_n be_v one_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o one_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o protestant_n have_v better_a unity_n and_o mean_n of_o unity_n than_o papist_n for_o however_o they_o differ_v in_o ceremony_n and_o discipline_n yet_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n they_o differ_v little_a as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o harmony_n of_o their_o confession_n which_o show_v agreement_n in_o their_o church_n however_o in_o explication_n of_o point_n private_a doctor_n differ_v and_o they_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a principle_n and_o safe_a in_o own_v one_o master_n even_o christ_n and_o one_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n to_o wit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o the_o papist_n themselves_o make_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o translation_n into_o the_o english_a tongue_n make_v plain_a in_o the_o chief_a point_n to_o be_v believe_v so_o that_o every_o ordinary_a man_n may_v be_v certain_a what_o it_o deliver_v concern_v they_o and_o this_o translation_n appear_v to_o be_v certain_a in_o those_o thing_n by_o compare_v it_o even_o with_o the_o papist_n own_o english_a translation_n at_o rheims_n and_o dow●y_n which_o have_v they_o leave_v out_o their_o corrupt_a annotation_n and_o permit_v it_o to_o be_v read_v as_o god_n require_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n the_o falsehood_n and_o error_n of_o popish_a priest_n will_v soon_o appear_v and_o be_v reject_v by_o all_o that_o love_n truth_n sect_n v._o the_o argument_n of_o h._n t._n from_o the_o unity_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n be_v against_o he_o and_o for_o protestant_n but_o h._n t._n add_v a_o second_o argument_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n thus_o as_o a_o natural_a unity_n and_o connexion_n of_o the_o part_n among_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o head_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o be_v and_o conservation_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n so_o the_o spiritual_a unity_n and_o connexion_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o head_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o be_v and_o conservation_n of_o a_o mystical_a body_n but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v a_o mystical_a body_n therefore_o a_o spiritual_a unity_n and_o connexion_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o head_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o be_v and_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o parity_n of_o reason_n which_o be_v between_o a_o natural_a and_o mystical_a body_n for_o as_o a_o natural_a body_n must_v needs_o die_v if_o all_o its_o part_n by_o which_o it_o shall_v subsist_v be_v tear_v and_o divide_v one_o from_o another_o so_o also_o a_o mystical_a body_n perish_v if_o all_o its_o member_n be_v divide_v from_o one_o another_o and_o from_o the_o head_n whence_o it_o have_v its_o spiritual_a life_n by_o schism_n and_o heresy_n answ_n though_o it_o be_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v only_o from_o a_o similitude_n which_o do_v only_o illustrate_v not_o prove_v as_o logician_n say_v true_o and_o there_o
live_v etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o life_n they_o be_v impudent_o appropriate_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o a_o few_o line_n before_o augustine_n declare_v who_o he_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v design_v by_o the_o divine_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o beginning_n from_o jerusalem_n increase_v in_o place_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o have_v write_v the_o name_n of_o the_o same_o place_n in_o their_o epistle_n and_o act_n and_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o other_o nation_n so_o that_o clear_o augustine_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o which_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o catholic_n but_o also_o the_o corinthian_a ephesian_a thessalonian_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o neither_o this_o not_o any_o other_o father_n understand_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o roman_a only_o and_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supremacy_n nor_o do_v they_o hold_v a_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o it_o sect_n viii_o that_o it_o be_v nonsense_n or_o falsehood_n to_o term_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o shift_n of_o h._n t._n to_o avoid_v this_o objection_n be_v discover_v h._n t._n add_v object_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o catholic_n or_o universal_a answ_n i_o distinguish_v your_o antecedent_n the_o roman_a church_n as_o take_v only_o for_o the_o congregation_n of_o rome_n or_o italy_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n i_o grant_v as_o take_v for_o the_o whole_a collection_n of_o church_n hold_v communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n i_o deny_v it_o for_o so_o it_o be_v a_o universal_a church_n contain_v all_o particular_a church_n as_o all_o the_o part_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o in_o this_o acception_n also_o it_o be_v call_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n church_n and_o have_v a_o power_n of_o headship_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n object_n how_o can_v a_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n be_v universal_a answ_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o already_o by_o the_o extent_n and_o latitude_n of_o her_o power_n which_o be_v over_o all_o so_o a_o particular_a man_n be_v call_v a_o general_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o power_n over_o all_o the_o army_n i_o reply_v protestant_n do_v right_o object_v that_o the_o term_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_a be_v according_a to_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o word_n to_o speak_v contradiction_n to_o call_v that_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a but_o a_o part_n universal_a which_o be_v only_o particular_a the_o answer_n be_v by_o a_o distinction_n which_o be_v mere_a nonsense_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o take_v only_o for_o the_o congregation_n of_o rome_n or_o italy_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n as_o take_v for_o the_o whole_a collection_n of_o church_n hold_v communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o it_o be_v universal_a but_o be_v ever_o such_o language_n use_v by_o any_o apostle_n or_o ancient_n to_o term_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o other_o than_o the_o believer_n dwell_v or_o be_v at_o rome_n do_v ever_o any_o of_o the_o first_o age_n term_v the_o congregation_n of_o italy_n or_o the_o whole_a collection_n of_o church_n hold_v communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o roman_a church_n paul_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n write_v to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o rome_n rom._n 1._o 7._o and_o ignatius_n the_o martyr_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n term_n it_o the_o church_n which_o be_v seat_v in_o a_o place_n of_o the_o region_n of_o roman_n and_o the_o old_a council_n term_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o archbishop_n of_o old_a rome_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o new_a rome_n and_o a_o roman_a synod_n be_v always_o mean_v of_o a_o synod_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n if_o the_o new-minted_a gibberish_n of_o these_o man_n be_v receive_v than_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n of_o paris_n of_o toledo_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n etc._n etc._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o will_v not_o think_v that_o man_n craze_v that_o shall_v talk_v or_o write_v so_o by_o this_o kind_n of_o talk_v the_o roman_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v one_o and_o the_o corinthian_a another_o but_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o corinthian_a ephesian_a and_o all_o and_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_a shall_v write_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n charge_v the_o corinthian_a with_o schism_n shall_v charge_v the_o roman_a but_o this_o new_a cant_a language_n be_v fit_a for_o these_o juggler_n who_o have_v by_o such_o term_n bewitch_v silly_a papist_n to_o receive_v their_o new_a doctrine_n h._n t._n say_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o collection_n of_o all_o church_n hold_v communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o it_o be_v a_o universal_a church_n contain_v all_o particular_a church_n as_o all_o the_o part_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o whole_a i_o reply_v neither_o do_v he_o show_v any_o approve_a author_n for_o his_o speech_n nor_o what_o sort_n of_o part_n other_o particular_a church_n be_v as_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o roman_a as_o the_o whole_a he_o will_v not_o make_v it_o a_o universal_a whole_a which_o be_v predicate_v or_o say_v on_o more_o church_n in_o quid_fw-la that_o be_v when_o the_o question_n be_v what_o the_o more_o church_n be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v the_o roman_a for_o than_o it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o naples_n be_v the_o roman_a and_o so_o of_o other_o church_n if_o any_o be_v ask_v who_o be_v in_o his_o wit_n what_o be_v the_o church_n of_o naples_n will_v he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o be_v other_o church_n essential_a part_n for_o then_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v if_o the_o church_n of_o naples_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o if_o they_o apostarize_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n cease_v to_o be_v nor_o will_v it_o be_v say_v other_o church_n be_v integral_a part_n for_o then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v maim_v and_o be_v but_o half_a a_o church_n if_o they_o revolt_v from_o the_o faith_n or_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v or_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o other_o part_n he_o mean_v i_o understand_v not_o nor_o do_v i_o think_v h._n t._n distinct_o know_v himself_o but_o that_o he_o be_v use_v to_o this_o unintelligible_a jesuitical_a nonsense_n of_o roman_a catholic_a church_n sure_o before_o he_o make_v this_o the_o definition_n of_o catholic_a that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v coexistent_a with_o all_o time_n and_o to_o be_v spread_v or_o diffuse_v over_o all_o place_n according_a to_o which_o by_o term_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n catholic_a he_o shall_v mean_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v in_o all_o place_n since_o christ_n build_v this_o church_n and_o in_o every_o place_n of_o the_o world_n but_o both_o these_o be_v palpable_a lie_n contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o sense_n nor_o in_o this_o sense_n shall_v it_o be_v as_o a_o whole_a that_o have_v part_n but_o be_v the_o only_a and_o a_o ubiquetary_n church_n but_o he_o give_v two_o reason_n of_o this_o title_n that_o it_o be_v the_o mother_n church_n and_o have_v power_n of_o headship_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o reply_v 1._o that_o both_o these_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o mother_n church_n in_o any_o true_a sense_n it_o be_v a_o say_n indeed_o that_o god_n be_v a_o believer_n father_n and_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n but_o however_o the_o ancient_n have_v use_v it_o yet_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o so_o nor_o be_v it_o in_o any_o good_a sense_n true_a for_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o congregation_n of_o believer_n who_o be_v first_o such_o a●ore_o they_o be_v a_o church_n now_o than_o the_o sense_n must_v be_v the_o church_n that_o be_v believer_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v the_o church_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v say_v gal._n 4._o 26._o the_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v above_o be_v free_a which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o but_o that_o be_v the_o evangelical_n covenant_n v_o 24._o not_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n do_v by_o the_o church_n or_o upon_o the_o church_n from_o which_o in_o a_o meet_a resemblance_n the_o church_n may_v be_v term_v the_o mother_n of_o believer_n they_o be_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o the_o church_n who_o bring_v forth_o soul_n to_o
christ_n if_o the_o term_n mother_n church_n be_v from_o hence_o that_o from_o it_o the_o gospel_n go_v forth_o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o none_o but_o jerusalem_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n not_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v the_o power_n of_o headship_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n no_o not_o according_a to_o the_o papist_n own_o opinion_n which_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o power_n and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o pastoral_a office_n now_o i_o suppose_v they_o will_v not_o say_v the_o church_n have_v the_o pastoral_a office_n or_o that_o they_o be_v pastor_n if_o they_o shall_v they_o must_v make_v woman_n who_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o man_n pastor_n and_o all_o the_o believer_n who_o be_v the_o church_n pastor_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n and_o if_o the_o church_n be_v pastor_n or_o have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n who_o be_v the_o sheep_n who_o be_v to_o be_v feed_v and_o over_o who_o this_o jurisdiction_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v but_o if_o they_o mean_v only_o by_o the_o church_n universal_a the_o pope_n of_o rome_n than_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v inquire_v be_v who_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n when_o enquiry_n be_v make_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o when_o there_o be_v no_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v no_o church_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v uncertain_a it_o be_v uncertain_a which_o be_v the_o church_n so_o ridiculous_a be_v the_o papist_n talk_n and_o dispute_v about_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v no_o tolerable_a sense_n can_v be_v make_v with_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n being_n catholic_a the_o mother_n of_o church_n have_v power_n of_o headship_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v either_o of_o right_n or_o in_o possession_n such_o power_n not_o of_o right_a as_o shall_v be_v show_v art_n 7._o where_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o the_o claim_n to_o it_o be_v mere_o impudent_a and_o arrogant_a without_o any_o colour_n of_o right_n nor_o in_o possession_n for_o beside_o the_o protestant_a church_n the_o greek_a church_n neither_o now_o nor_o heretofore_o when_o unquestionable_o orthodox_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o the_o romish_a bishop_n yet_o be_v these_o thing_n grant_v to_o h._n t._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v mother_n and_o head_n be_v this_o a_o fit_a reason_n to_o term_v it_o catholic_a will_v any_o call_v a_o mother_n of_o twenty_o child_n all_o she_o twenty_o child_n will_v any_o man_n call_v julius_n caesar_n because_o dictator_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o roman_a senate_n because_o ruler_n all_o the_o roman_a people_n or_o all_o the_o people_n of_o that_o empire_n h._n t._n his_o instance_n be_v frivolous_a though_o man_n call_v the_o ruler_n of_o a_o army_n the_o captain_n general_n yet_o not_o a_o general_a man_n or_o the_o universal_a army_n and_o suitable_o if_o it_o be_v allow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v universal_a bishop_n yet_o in_o no_o good_a sense_n can_v he_o or_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v term_v the_o universal_a church_n but_o this_o talk_n about_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n be_v manifest_o ridiculous_a nonsense_n or_o false_a h._n t._n add_v object_n you_o communicate_v not_o with_o we_o and_o many_o other_o therefore_o your_o communion_n be_v not_o catholic_a or_o universal_a answ_n i_o grant_v the_o antecedent_n but_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o universal_a communion_n require_v not_o communion_n with_o all_o particular_a sect_n or_o person_n but_o only_o with_o all_o true_a believer_n no_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n avoid_v tit._n 3._o 10_o 11._o answ_n to_o catholic_a communion_n be_v requisite_a communion_n with_o all_o christian_a church_n though_o not_o with_o all_o particular_a sect_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v no_o heretic_n be_v manifest_a from_o their_o confession_n which_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n doctrine_n although_o papist_n do_v clamorous_o term_v they_o such_o and_o destroy_v they_o as_o such_o and_o therein_o show_v themselves_o successor_n to_o nero_n not_o to_o peter_n whereas_o papist_n be_v the_o most_o manifest_a schismatic_n and_o great_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v i_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o next_o article_n artic_a v._o the_o roman_a church_n be_v neither_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o the_o high_a visible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n nor_o be_v it_o prove_v that_o she_o be_v infallible_a both_o in_o her_o proposition_n and_o definition_n of_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o to_o have_v power_n from_o god_n to_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v she_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n but_o all_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a impudent_a and_o arrogant_a claim_n of_o romanist_n that_o have_v no_o colour_n of_o proof_n from_o scripture_n or_o antiquity_n sect_n i._o the_o deceit_n of_o h._n t._n be_v show_v in_o assert_v a_o infallibility_n and_o judicature_n of_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o mean_v of_o the_o pope_n h._n t._n entitle_v his_o five_o article_n thus_o the_o church_n infallibility_n demonstrate_v and_o say_v our_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n be_v the_o high_a visible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o she_o be_v infallible_a both_o in_o her_o proposition_n and_o definition_n of_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n have_v a_o power_n from_o god_n to_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v she_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o six_o page_n after_o p._n 70._o he_o say_v thus_o note_v here_o for_o your_o better_a understanding_n this_o whole_a question_n that_o when_o we_o affirm_v the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o thing_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o word_n church_n we_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o church_n diffuse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n unanimous_o teach_v who_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v infallible_a but_o also_o the_o church_n represent_v in_o a_o council_n perfect_o ecumenical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v call_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o definition_n of_o faith_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v infallible_a ans_fw-fr we_o have_v here_o a_o most_o arrogant_a proud_a claim_n like_o that_o of_o the_o king_n of_o tyrus_n ezek._n 28._o 2_o 3._o i_o be_o god_n i_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o secret_a that_o they_o can_v hide_v from_o i_o for_o what_o be_v this_o less_o which_o be_v here_o ascribe_v to_o mere_a man_n often_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n than_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n sure_o its_o more_o than_o angel_n have_v job_n 4._o 18_o but_o though_o this_o author_n be_v bold_a enough_o in_o the_o title_n and_o tenet_n yet_o in_o his_o after_o note_n he_o have_v such_o subterfuge_n as_o show_v his_o despair_n of_o make_v it_o good_a and_o his_o deceitful_a mockage_n of_o his_o unwary_a reader_n for_o 1._o he_o deal_v like_o a_o sophister_n that_o after_o his_o argument_n state_n the_o question_n 2._o he_o do_v so_o shift_v off_o this_o infallibility_n from_o one_o to_o another_o that_o he_o know_v not_o well_o where_o to_o fix_v it_o fain_o he_o will_v fasten_v it_o on_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o do_v in_o a_o manner_n at_o last_o and_o hart_n more_o plain_o confess_v with_o rainold_n ch_n 7._o divis_fw-la 7._o though_o it_o behoove_v the_o pope_n to_o use_v the_o advice_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o i_o speak_v of_o confistory_n court_n and_o council_n yet_o whether_o he_o follow_v their_o advice_n or_o no_o his_o decree_n be_v true_a but_o then_o the_o argument_n from_o scripture_n and_o father_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n have_v appear_v to_o be_v impertinent_a therefore_o he_o do_v not_o in_o plain_a word_n disclaim_v its_o infallibility_n but_o say_v when_o we_o affirm_v the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o thing_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o word_n church_n we_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o church_n diffuse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n unanimous_o teach_v who_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v infallible_a wherein_o you_o may_v perceive_v 1._o egregious_a vanity_n in_o make_v the_o roman_a church_n catholic_n 2._o the_o church_n diffuse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n teach_v 3._o teach_v unanimous_o which_o be_v all_o like_a a_o sick_a man_n dream_n of_o a_o golden_a mountain_n there_o have_v never_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o in_o the_o world_n nor_o ever_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v 2._o egregious_a deceit_n in_o the_o term_n this_o church_n infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n propound_v and_o define_v point_n of_o faith_n have_v power_n from_o god_n to_o oblige_v all_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o
39_o and_o never_o to_o repair_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v resolve_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o h._n t._n say_v true_a how_o much_o do_v he_o abase_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n who_o make_v it_o to_o depend_v on_o man_n for_o such_o be_v the_o church_n pretend_a infallibility_n report_v and_o ascribe_v it_o to_o pope_n and_o council_n who_o do_v oft_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o one_o another_o which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v have_v from_o god_n and_o his_o word_n what_o be_v this_o but_o as_o in_o another_o case_n tertullian_n say_v of_o the_o roman_a senate_n decree_a who_o shall_v be_v worship_v as_o god_n god_n shall_v not_o be_v god_n unless_o man_n will_v so_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v his_o word_n unless_o man_n will_n which_o be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o in_o h._n t._n who_o art_n 8._o ascribe_v that_o assurance_n to_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o assurance_n but_o from_o man_n confess_o fallible_a as_o shall_v be_v show_v art_n 8._o which_o he_o deny_v to_o be_v from_o scripture_n as_o if_o the_o obscure_a tradition_n of_o unknown_a person_n from_o age_n to_o age_n be_v more_o certain_a than_o the_o great_a write_a tradition_n receive_v from_o apostle_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n beside_o how_o do_v he_o reckon_v of_o all_o other_o beside_o pope_n and_o council_n as_o if_o they_o be_v all_o idiot_n and_o fool_n that_o they_o can_v understand_v no_o chapter_n of_o the_o bible_n without_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v be_v sometime_o altogether_o unlearned_a what_o blockhead_n will_v he_o have_v man_n think_v themselves_o after_o all_o their_o study_n of_o language_n and_o art_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o yet_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a what_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o matth._n 4._o act_n 8._o or_o any_o other_o chapter_n in_o the_o bible_n unless_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n tell_v they_o why_o do_v not_o all_o their_o commentator_n and_o preacher_n first_o ask_v the_o pope_n of_o the_o me●ning_n of_o the_o scripture_n afore_o they_o by_o writing_n or_o preach_v take_v on_o they_o to_o expound_v it_o why_o do_v not_o the_o pope_n forbid_v they_o to_o expound_v till_o they_o have_v consult_v he_o will_v ●e_a permi●_n they_o to_o teach_v that_o of_o which_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a assurance_n why_o do_v he_o tie_v man_n to_o follow_v the_o consent_n of_o father_n as_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o in_o his_o bull_n do_v if_o the_o father_n yield_v no_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o any_o chapter_n in_o the_o bible_n without_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n or_o his_o counsel_n infallibility_n how_o do_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o father_n chrysostome_n hi●rome_n etc._n etc._n do_v so_o well_o expound_v the_o scripture_n as_o that_o their_o consent_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o modern_a exposition_n do_v they_o first_o consult_v the_o church_n or_o the_o church_n they_o pope_n damasus_n i_o believe_v have_v more_o help_n from_o hierome_n to_o expound_v scripture_n by_o than_o hierome_n from_o d●m●sus_n have_v the_o pope_n any_o better_a mean_n to_o expound_v scripture_n by_o than_o the_o father_n or_o the_o father_n than_o other_o learned_a man_n in_o these_o day_n wherein_o do_v any_o of_o the_o father_n exceed_v cajetan_n arias_n monta●us_n and_o such_o learned_a romanist_n or_o any_o of_o all_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o apostle_n day_n in_o ability_n to_o open_a scripture_n will_v not_o such_o man_n as_o these_o secret_o disdain_n and_o smile_v in_o scorn_n if_o any_o shall_v prefer_v any_o of_o the_o best_a exposition_n of_o pope_n before_o their_o own_o will_v the_o jansenian_o or_o molini●●s_n think_v either_o the_o late_a pope_n innocent_a or_o the_o present_a pope_n alexander_n more_o infallible_a in_o their_o exposition_n than_o themselves_o i_o trow_v not_o so_o little_o be_v the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n esteem_v when_o it_o touch_v themselves_o however_o they_o make_v a_o great_a noise_n of_o it_o against_o protestant_n yea_o some_o papist_n have_v well_o prefer_v the_o exposition_n of_o late_a writer_n before_o the_o father_n and_o council_n and_o pope_n give_v this_o for_o a_o reason_n that_o late_a writer_n have_v have_v more_o help_n in_o that_o they_o have_v have_v their_o own_o ability_n and_o diligence_n to_o boot_v for_o find_v the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n beside_o the_o father_n write_n and_o may_v see_v far_o than_o they_o do_v as_o a_o child_n set_v on_o a_o giant_n shoulder_n as_o banner_n do_v fit_o express_v it_o do_v not_o at_o this_o day_n the_o learned_a expositor_n reject_v the_o exposition_n of_o father_n and_o pope_n and_o council_n do_v not_o maldonat_a the_o jesuit_n express_o reject_v in_o his_o commentary_n on_o john_n 6._o 53._o the_o exposition_n of_o that_o verse_n by_o which_o pope_n innocent_a augustine_n and_o many_o of_o the_o father_n follow_v hold_v the_o give_v the_o eucharist_n to_o infant_n necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n which_o the_o council_n of_o tren●_n itself_o do_v condemn_v so_o sottish_a a_o conceit_n have_v h._n t._n here_o vent_v that_o doubtless_o none_o but_o the_o ignorant_a sort_n of_o popish_a proselyte_n can_v believe_v he_o in_o if_o they_o do_v not_o resolve_v not_o to_o seem_v to_o see_v what_o they_o do_v see_v but_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a i_o will_v fain_o know_v how_o h._n t._n can_v demonstrate_v who_o or_o which_o be_v that_o church_n which_o be_v infallible_a or_o give_v assurance_n at_o this_o distance_n from_o rome_n that_o this_o or_o that_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v thus_o determine_v by_o that_o infallible_a church_n will_v he_o make_v every_o priest_n or_o legate_n or_o register_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a if_o not_o let_v he_o tell_v i_o how_o he_o be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o or_o the_o lateran_a council_n do_v define_v transubstantiation_n or_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o and_o the_o last_o lateran_n council_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n if_o he_o say_v by_o universal_a tradition_n or_o the_o record_n which_o be_v keep_v and_o be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o the_o agreement_n of_o opposite_a party_n though_o in_o the_o point_v name_v there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o mean_n which_o do_v give_v such_o assurance_n of_o those_o determination_n as_o be_v give_v by_o they_o of_o the_o scripture_n sure_a i_o think_v h._n t._n who_o make_v such_o determination_n to_o be_v assure_o they_o upon_o such_o or_o the_o like_a reason_n of_o their_o credibility_n shall_v yield_v that_o there_o be_v more_o assurance_n from_o these_o without_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o will_n h._n t._n be_v more_o unbelieving_a than_o a_o jew_n who_o acknowledge_v the_o book_n of_o moses_n the_o psalm_n and_o prophet_n to_o be_v god_n word_n will_v he_o not_o allow_v that_o to_o a_o christian_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v to_o wit_n assurance_n infallible_a from_o micah_n 5._o 2._o that_o the_o messias●hould_v ●hould_z be_v bear_v at_o bedlam_n without_o the_o church_n infallibility_n will_n h._n t._n think_v he_o can_v make_v such_o man_n as_o arias_n montanus_n or_o cardinal_n caj●tan_n and_o other_o learned_a romanist_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n to_o be_v god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o three_o four_o five_o six_o seven_o chapter_n thereof_o without_o the_o church_n declaration_n do_v they_o gather_v their_o exposition_n out_o of_o pope_n decree_n canon_n of_o council_n or_o examine_v they_o by_o they_o do_v not_o he_o know_v that_o in_o many_o place_n those_o and_o other_o learned_a man_n have_v interpret_v text_n otherwise_o than_o pope_n and_o council_n approve_v by_o he_o have_v expound_v they_o do_v not_o they_o know_v that_o such_o a_o attempt_n will_v be_v but_o a_o expose_v of_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o contempt_n and_o make_v their_o canon_n law_n appear_v ridiculous_a what_o unmercifulness_n and_o carelessness_n of_o man_n soul_n be_v there_o in_o pope_n council_n church_n if_o they_o be_v infallible_a that_o in_o the_o space_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n they_o have_v not_o give_v we_o such_o a_o commentary_n on_o the_o bible_n as_o may_v take_v away_o all_o doubt_n from_o inquire_a christian_n about_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o determine_v all_o controversy_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n sure_o it_o be_v fit_a work_n than_o to_o enrich_v their_o kindred_n advance_v base_a son_n give_v audience_n to_o ambassador_n overawe_n prince_n and_o emperor_n subdue_v the_o holy_a land_n about_o which_o pope_n and_o council_n have_v waste_v a_o world_n of_o
the_o chalcedon_n which_o give_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constan●inople_n equal_a power_n with_o the_o roman_a in_o his_o province_n and_o ascribe_v the_o pope_n dignity_n not_o to_o any_o grant_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n but_o to_o custom_n out_o of_o regard_n to_o rome_n as_o the_o imperial_a city_n not_o to_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n or_o constance_n which_o make_v the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n but_o h._n t._n add_v a_o argument_n for_o the_o church_n supreme_a power_n of_o judicature_n that_o be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n in_o every_o cause_n who_o have_v a_o absolute_a power_n to_o oblige_v all_o dissenter_n to_o a_o agreement_n and_o from_o who_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n in_o such_o a_o cause_n but_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v a_o absolute_a power_n to_o oblige_v all_o that_o disagree_v in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o appeal_n from_o her_o decision_n therefore_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v supreme_a judge_n in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n the_o major_n be_v manifest_a by_o induction_n in_o all_o court_n of_o judicature_n the_o minor_a have_v be_v prove_v above_o by_o the_o first_o second_o and_o four_o argument_n answ_n it_o be_v deny_v that_o the_o minor_a have_v be_v prove_v or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o judge_n beside_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o can_v so_o oblige_v dissenter_n in_o those_o point_n nor_o do_v a_o great_a part_n of_o papist_n themselves_o at_o this_o day_n namely_o the_o french_a papist_n make_v such_o account_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n o●_n pope_n judgement_n but_o that_o they_o do_v conceive_v they_o may_v and_o sometime_o have_v appeal_v from_o they_o to_o a_o general_a council_n occam_n hold_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v haereticabilis_fw-la that_o be_v may_v be_v a_o heretic_n some_o of_o they_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n have_v be_v fain_o to_o acquit_v themselves_o to_o emperor_n by_o apology_n some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n by_o general_a council_n father_n university_n of_o paris_n gerson_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la and_o the_o french_a church_n conceive_v their_o church_n may_v be_v without_o a_o pope_n and_o well_o govern_v by_o a_o patriarch_n of_o their_o own_o it_o be_v but_o a_o new_a and_o late_o invent_v doctrine_n of_o jesuit_n and_o other_o flatterer_n of_o pope_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o pope_n or_o a_o general_a council_n approve_v by_o he_o be_v infallible_a nor_o be_v there_o a_o word_n in_o any_o of_o the_o father_n cite_v by_o h._n t._n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 40._o be_v cite_v maimedly_n by_o h._n t._n they_o be_v entire_o thus_o for_o where_o the_o church_n be_v there_o be_v also_o the_o spirit_n and_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n and_o all_o grace_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v truth_n by_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o truth_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o by_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v not_o only_o the_o roman_n but_o any_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v and_o in_o the_o word_n before_o he_o set_v down_o the_o truth_n he_o mean_v to_o wit_n that_o if_o one_o god_n and_o salvation_n by_o christ_n which_o he_o term_v the_o constant_a preach_n of_o the_o church_n on_o every_o side_n and_o equal_o persevere_v have_v testimony_n from_o prophet_n and_o from_o apostle_n and_o from_o all_o disciple_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o commend_v no_o other_o preach_v of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o the_o definition_n of_o any_o now_o existent_a church_n or_o after_o church_n without_o the_o scripture_n the_o next_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o as_o here_o h._n t._n them●_n 1._o c._n 49._o there_o be_v not_o in_o my_o book_n so_o many_o chapter_n but_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o and_o be_v allege_v by_o h._n t._n art_n 4._o and_o answer_v by_o i_o before_o art_n 4._o sect_n 7._o the_o other_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v under_o no_o man_n judgement_n for_o to_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n be_v know_v in_o which_o be_v perfect_a faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o all_o the_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n and_o firm_a knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o teach_v all_o truth_n i_o find_v not_o any_o where_o as_o he_o cite_v they_o in_o l._n 1._o there_o be_v not_o sixty_o two_o chapter_n and_o in_o l._n 4._o c._n 62._o which_o i_o suspect_v by_o his_o former_a quotation_n he_o will_v have_v cite_v the_o word_n be_v thus_o after_o he_o have_v say_v ch_n 53._o such_o a_o disciple_n mean_v who_o have_v read_v diligent_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v with_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n with_o who_o be_v the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n true_o spiritual_a receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n judge_v indeed_o all_o man_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o in_o several_a follow_a chapter_n set_v down_o various_a heretic_n who_o he_o shall_v judge_v and_o ch_n 62._o say_v he_o shall_v judge_v also_o all_o those_o who_o be_v without_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v the_o church_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o for_o all_o thing_n constant_a be_v know_v or_o manifest_a to_o he_o both_o the_o entire_a faith_n in_o one_o god_n omnipotent_a from_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v and_o in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n and_o the_o disposition_n of_o he_o by_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v man_n the_o firm_a sentence_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o cause_v the_o acknowledge_v of_o truth_n who_o have_v expound_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o father_n and_o son_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v present_a with_o mankind_n as_o the_o father_n will_v by_o which_o any_o one_o may_v perceive_v that_o h._n t._n if_o these_o be_v the_o word_n he_o mean_v have_v corrupt_o cite_v they_o mangle_v they_o and_o pervert_v they_o to_o prove_v a_o infallibility_n and_o supreme_a judicature_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o pope_n for_o other_o which_o be_v mean_v of_o every_o true_a spiritual_a disciple_n and_o his_o private_a judgement_n for_o himself_o and_o in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o according_a to_o and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n concern_v the_o judgement_n which_o each_o christian_a may_v have_v and_o have_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o while_o he_o follow_v he_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o nor_o needs_o any_o one_o judgement_n pope_n or_o other_o to_o define_v what_o he_o shall_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o origen_n that_o only_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o truth_n which_o in_o nothing_o disagree_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o our_o understand_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n we_o must_v not_o believe_v otherwise_o than_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v to_o we_o prefat_n in_o lib._n periarch_n whether_o they_o be_v right_o cite_v i_o know_v not_o have_v not_o the_o book_n to_o examine_v they_o by_o and_o by_o his_o other_o citation_n as_o by_o his_o citation_n of_o origen_n art_n 4._o where_o the_o same_o word_n as_o i_o conceive_v be_v cite_v somewhat_o otherwise_o which_o be_v answer_v art_n 4._o sect_n 7._o before_n the_o word_n from_o the_o apostle_n being_n hear_v leave_v out_o and_o his_o etc._n etc._n here_o i_o suspect_v fraud_n yet_o if_o the_o word_n be_v as_o he_o cite_v they_o they_o prove_v not_o what_o he_o bring_v they_o for_o there_o be_v no_o restriction_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n much_o less_o to_o the_o pope_n nor_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n say_v to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v unwritten_a and_o other_o than_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o succession_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o deliver_v be_v not_o mean_v of_o any_o of_o those_o point_n which_o the_o pope_n will_v obtrude_v on_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o protestant_n reject_v but_o in_o probability_n the_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n profess_v at_o baptism_n which_o irenaeus_n origen_n tertullian_n etc._n etc._n be_v wont_a to_o hold_v forth_o against_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n and_o protestant_n do_v still_o avouch_v the_o word_n of_o cyprian_a de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccles_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o word_n precedent_a show_n and_o the_o freedom_n from_o adultery_n and_o the_o uncorruptednesse_n and_o chastity_n of_o
the_o church_n can_v be_v mean_v of_o every_o visible_a church_n as_o if_o it_o be_v free_a from_o error_n but_o of_o the_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v the_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n free_a from_o error_n of_o any_o sort_n but_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n as_o the_o word_n follow_v show_n nor_o be_v he_o say_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n or_o not_o to_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o have_v not_o it_o for_o his_o mother_n nor_o be_v all_o other_o church_n say_v to_o be_v adulteress_n who_o hold_v not_o with_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n but_o he_o who_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o have_v it_o for_o his_o mother_n of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v illius_fw-la faetu●nascimur_fw-la illius_fw-la lacte_fw-la nutrimur_fw-la spiritu_fw-la ojus_fw-la animamur_fw-la whence_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o mean_v the_o church_n to_o be_v his_o mother_n who_o be_v bear_v again_o with_o the_o same_o birth_n baptism_n or_o faith_n nourish_v by_o her_o milk_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o animate_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o of_o this_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o whoever_o be_v so_o sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n or_o number_n of_o believer_n throughout_o the_o world_n who_o profess_v and_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o common_a faith_n and_o be_v nourish_v by_o the_o same_o gospel_n and_o quicken_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n they_o be_v divide_v from_o god_n and_o have_v not_o he_o for_o their_o father_n but_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o he_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n be_v divide_v from_o god_n but_o there_o be_v other_o word_n of_o cyprian_a cite_v by_o he_o as_o find_v epist_n 55._o in_o my_o edition_n at_o bafil_v 1558._o l._n 1._o epist_n 3._o as_o bellar._n also_o cite_v they_o l._n 4._o de_fw-fr romano_n pontifice_fw-la c._n 4._o which_o be_v thus_o set_v down_o by_o h._n t._n to_o peter_n chair_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n infidelity_n or_o false_a faith_n can_v have_v access_n in_o which_o he_o will_v insinuate_v 1._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o principal_a church_n 2._o that_o by_o reason_n of_o peter_n chair_n there_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v come_v to_o that_o church_n but_o the_o word_n be_v right_o and_o full_o set_v down_o and_o the_o epistle_n be_v read_v throughout_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o cyprian_a have_v no_o such_o meaning_n as_o this_o author_n will_v put_v upon_o he_o the_o word_n be_v these_o after_o these_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v relate_v before_o concern_v the_o crime_n of_o some_o exclude_v by_o he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n as_o yet_o over_o and_o above_o a_o false_a bishop_n be_v constitute_v for_o themselves_o by_o heretic_n they_o dare_v sail_n and_o bring_v letter_n from_o schismatic_n and_o profane_a person_n to_o peter_n chair_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n arise_v and_o not_o think_v they_o to_o be_v roman_n who_o faith_n the_o apostle_n declare_v be_v praise_v to_o who_o perfidiousness_n can_v have_v access_n i●_n which_o i_o grant_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n do_v arise_v and_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n peter_n chair_n the_o reason_n of_o which_o speech_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o by_o cyprian_n himself_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la pr●latorum_fw-la or_o de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccle●●ae_fw-la in_o these_o word_n the_o lord_n speak_v to_o peter_n i_o say_v he_o say_v to_o thou_o that_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v it_o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o what_o thing_n thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o what_o thing_n thou_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v also_o loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o to_o the_o same_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o although_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o bestow_v equal_a power_n and_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o i_o also_o send_v you_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o you_o remit_v sin_n to_o any_o they_o shall_v be_v remit_v to_o he_o if_o you_o ●old_a they_o to_o any_o they_o shall_v be_v hold_v yet_o that_o he_o may_v manifest_v unity_n he_o have_v dispose_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o rise_n of_o the_o same_o unity_n begin_v from_o one_o very_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v also_o that_o which_o peter_n be_v endue_v with_o equal_a allotment_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n come_v from_o unity_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o and_o a_o little_a after_o which_o unity_n we_o ought_v firm_o to_o hold_v and_o vindicate_v chief_o bishop_n who_o be_v precedent_n in_o the_o church_n that_o we_o may_v prove_v also_o bishopric_n itself_o to_o be_v one_o and_o undivided_a let_v no_o man_n deceive_v the_o fraternity_n with_o a_o lie_n let_v no_o man_n corrupt_v the_o truth_n of_o faith_n with_o perfidious_a prevarication_n bishopric_n be_v one_o of_o which_o by_o each_o entire_o a_o part_n be_v hold_v by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o cyprian_n make_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o principal_a church_n not_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v above_o any_o other_o in_o honour_n and_o power_n or_o that_o peter_n chair_n be_v more_o infallible_a than_o other_o apostle_n chair_n or_o that_o a_o supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o he_o express_o say_v that_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o equal_a allotment_n or_o fellowship_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o that_o in_o solidum_fw-la whole_o and_o entire_o that_o be_v as_o much_o one_o as_o another_o each_o bishop_n hold_v his_o part_n in_o the_o one_o bishopric_n but_o because_o he_o make_v the_o unity_n of_o episcopacy_n to_o have_v its_o original_n from_o christ_n grant_n to_o peter_n matth._n 16._o 18._o that_o all_o bishop_n may_v be_v as_o one_o none_o arrogate_a more_o to_o himself_o than_o another_o and_o that_o this_o be_v cyprian_n mind_n appear_v 1._o by_o the_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n cornelius_n present_o after_o the_o word_n which_o h._n t._n cite_v where_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o that_o sail_v to_o rome_n to_o bring_v thither_o letter_n of_o complaint_n against_o cyprian_a he_o say_v but_o what_o cause_n be_v there_o of_o their_o go_n and_o declare_v their_o make_v a_o false_a bishop_n against_o the_o bishop_n for_o either_o that_o please_v than_o which_o they_o have_v do_v and_o they_o persevere_v in_o their_o wickedness_n or_o if_o it_o displease_v they_o and_o they_o recede_v they_o know_v whither_o they_o shall_v return_v for_o s●●h_v it_o be_v decree_v by_o all_o we_o and_o it_o be_v ●qual_a alike_o and_o just_a that_o every_o one_o cause_n shall_v be_v there_o hear_v where_o the_o crime_n be_v admit_v and_o to_o several_a pastor_n a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v ascribe_v which_o each_o pastor_n shall_v rule_v and_o govern_v be_v to_o give_v account_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o own_o act_n it_o be_v meet_v very_o that_o thos●_n over_o who_o we_o be_v precedent_n shall_v not_o run_v about_o nor_o break_v the_o cohere_a concord_n of_o bishop_n by_o their_o subdolous_a and_o fallacious_a rashness_n but_o there_o plead_v their_o cause_n where_o they_o may_v have_v both_o accuser_n and_o witness_n of_o their_o own_o crime_n unless_o to_o a_o few_o desperate_a and_o wretched_a person_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n settle_v in_o africa_n seem_v less_o who_o have_v already_o judge_v of_o they_o and_o by_o the_o weight_n of_o their_o judgement_n have_v damn_v their_o conscience_n bind_v with_o the_o many_o snare_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o word_n show_v that_o cyprian_a deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o he_o less_o th●n_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o person_n shall_v appeal_v from_o they_o to_o rome_n but_o assert_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o that_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v give_v to_o each_o pastor_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o rule_v and_o govern_v and_o thereof_o must_v give_v account_n to_o the_o lord_n not_o the_o whole_a to_o any_o one_o no_o not_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o he_o ought_v
not_o to_o receive_v the_o letter_n and_o complaint_n of_o the_o divide_a party_n from_o cyprian_a nor_o to_o take_v on_o he_o to_o ju●ge_v their_o cause_n but_o to_o remit_v they_o to_o their_o own_o bishop_n 2._o it_o appear_v by_o the_o fact_n of_o cyprian_a who_o oppose_v st●phen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o point_n of_o rebaptise_v the_o baptize_v by_o heretic_n as_o his_o epistle_n to_o pompeius_n show_v and_o join_v with_o firmi●●anus_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n cilicia_n and_o galatia_n excommunicate_v by_o pope_n stephen_n and_o so_o involve_v in_o the_o same_o censure_n in_o which_o state_n he_o die_v without_o repentance_n for_o aught_o be_v know_v and_o therefore_o conceive_v not_o the_o pope_n infallible_a or_o his_o judge_n or_o himself_o subject_a to_o he_o but_o count_v stephen_n a_o usurper_n over_o his_o brethren_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o impose_v his_o decree_n on_o other_o and_o censure_n of_o dissenter_n and_o for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o cornelius_n they_o be_v not_o as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o to_o peter_n chair_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n infidelity_n or_o false_a faith_n can_v have_v access_n but_o to_o the_o roman_n mean_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o perfidia_fw-la there_o be_v mean_v not_o any_o infidelity_n or_o false_a faith_n whatsoever_o but_o those_o perfidious_a person_n and_o their_o treacherous_a action_n in_o break_v from_o cyprian_a nor_o do_v he_o say_v that_o perfidiousness_n can_v have_v access_n at_o no_o time_n but_o not_o at_o that_o time_n which_o he_o ascribe_v not_o to_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o place_n but_o their_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n heretofore_o praise_v by_o paul_n and_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o cornelius_n their_o bishop_n and_o their_o own_o vigilancy_n as_o the_o word_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n show_v although_o i_o know_v there_o your_o fraternity_n to_o wit_n be_v fence_v by_o your_o providence_n and_o also_o wary_a enough_o by_o their_o own_o vigilancy_n can_v be_v take_v with_o the_o poison_n of_o heretic_n nor_o deceive_v and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o magistery_n and_o divine_a precept_n prevail_v with_o they_o as_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v in_o they_o yet_o our_o over_o abundance_n of_o carefulness_n or_o charity_n have_v persuade_v we_o to_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o you_o be_v indeed_o not_o altogether_o out_o of_o fear_n of_o cornelius_n of_o who_o he_o take_v notice_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n marvail_v enough_o when_o he_o observe_v by_o his_o letter_n that_o he_o be_v somewhat_o move_v by_o the_o threat_n and_o terror_n of_o they_o that_o come_v and_o therefore_o do_v earnest_o press_v he_o to_o take_v courage_n and_o to_o withstand_v they_o which_o be_v right_o understand_v the_o speech_n of_o cyprian_a concern_v the_o roman_a constancy_n and_o the_o inaccessibleness_n of_o perfidiousness_n to_o they_o appear_v only_a expression_n of_o his_o confidence_n and_o good_a hope_n not_o of_o any_o certainty_n that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o much_o less_o of_o any_o infallibility_n of_o their_o bishop_n or_o church_n and_o this_o he_o do_v to_o engage_v they_o to_o withstand_v the_o schismatics_n it_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n with_o person_n to_o be_v constant_a to_o those_o who_o express_v their_o confide_n in_o they_o and_o their_o expectation_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v his_o epistle_n read_v to_o the_o most_o flourish_a clergy_n there_o preside_v with_o cornelius_n and_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o ample_a common_a people_n or_o laity_n that_o if_o any_o contagion_n of_o poison_a speech_n and_o pestiferous_a sow_v have_v creep_v in_o it_o may_v be_v all_o put_v off_o from_o the_o ear_n and_o breast_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o the_o entire_a and_o sincere_a love_n of_o good_a man_n may_v be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o filth_n of_o heretical_a detraction_n which_o show_v that_o he_o conceive_v they_o liable_a to_o such_o contagion_n and_o pollution_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v then_o altogether_o free_a all_o these_o thing_n be_v consider_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o these_o passage_n of_o cyprian_a be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n and_o supreme_a judicature_n and_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o h._n t._n assert_n that_o they_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o word_n of_o lactantius_n l._n 3._o c._n ult_n that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o have_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o truth_n the_o dwell_a place_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n be_v true_a but_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a dream_n that_o the_o rom●n_n and_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o same_o nor_o if_o they_o be_v do_v they_o prove_v infallibility_n in_o all_o definition_n of_o faith_n or_o supreme_a judicature_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o enjoy_n for_o themselves_o the_o true_a worship_n truth_n and_o faith_n the_o word_n of_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o the_o roman_a faith_n command_v by_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v change_v l._n 3._o c._n 4_o in_o apolog_n cont_n ruffinum_n we_o subscribe_v to_o who_o profess_v our_o ready_a reception_n of_o what_o faith_n the_o apostle_n command_v the_o word_n of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n adv_o hare_n c._n 41._o be_v thus_o not_o as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n two_o thing_n be_v vehement_o and_o studious_o to_o be_v observe_v unto_o which_o they_o ought_v altogether_o to_o stick_v who_o will_v not_o be_v heretic_n the_o first_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v ancient_o decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o universal_a council_n from_o all_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o late_a council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n nor_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o ancient_a council_n be_v infallible_a much_o less_o that_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a nor_o be_v the_o word_n of_o augustin_n which_o i_o find_v not_o l._n 4._o the_o bapt_a c._n 4_o i_o know_v by_o divine_a revelation_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n teach_v it_o all_o truth_n if_o they_o be_v as_o h._n t._n cite_v they_o for_o his_o purpose_n for_o if_o by_o it_o he_o mean_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v not_o he_o mean_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o the_o spirit_n teach_v it_o all_o truth_n it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o all_o truth_n simple_o nor_o at_o all_o time_n but_o i_o find_v these_o word_n l._n 4._o the_o bapt_a contra_fw-la donat._n c._n 5._o in_o vain_a some_o when_o they_o be_v overcome_v by_o reason_n object_n to_o we_o custom_n as_o if_o custom_n be_v great_a than_o truth_n or_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v in_o spiritual_n which_o be_v to_o the_o better_o reveal_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n this_o be_v plain_o true_a that_o reason_n and_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v put_v before_o custom_n the_o word_n of_o augustin_n epist_n 118._o c._n 5._o be_v not_o full_o set_v down_o by_o h._n t._n they_o be_v thus_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n prescribe_v which_o of_o these_o speak_v about_o offer_v and_o fast_v be_v to_o be_v don●_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v which_o we_o read_v in_o like_a manner_n also_o if_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n the_o whole_a church_n through_o the_o world_n do_v frequent_a for_o to_o dispute_v whether_o we_o be_v so_o to_o do_v be_v of_o most_o insolent_a madness_n where_o 1._o he_o mean_v it_o of_o rite_n not_o determine_v in_o scripture_n not_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n 2._o neither_o do_v he_o count_v it_o madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o use_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yea_o he_o make_v it_o a_o rule_n which_o he_o have_v from_o ambrose_n to_o fast_o as_o they_o do_v at_o milan_n when_o he_o be_v there_o and_o as_o they_o do_v at_o rome_n when_o he_o be_v there_o epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la casul_n no_o nor_o to_o dispute_v against_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o one_o age_n but_o against_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o every_o age_n other_o word_n of_o august_n cont_n epist_n fundam_fw-la c._n 5._o be_v bring_v by_o h._n t._n and_o urge_v often_o by_o romanist_n for_o the_o assert_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n above_o the_o scripture_n thus_o and_o i_o myself_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v i_o to_o it_o but_o the_o word_n be_v not_o thus_o right_o allege_v for_o 1._o the_o word_n catholic_n be_v leave_v out_o which_o show_v he_o mean_v it_o not_o of_o the_o roman_a only_o and_o some_o word_n follow_v seem_v to_o extend_v it_o to_o the_o church_n comprehend_v
the_o apostle_n or_o if_o restrain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o that_o age_n it_o be_v mean_v of_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o he_o 2._o the_o word_n ego_fw-la vero_fw-la evangelio_fw-la non_fw-la crederem_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o catholicae_fw-la eccles●ae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la be_v not_o well_o render_v by_o h._n t._n as_o if_o they_o do_v declare_v his_o purpose_n for_o the_o future_a or_o that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n or_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o the_o roman_n or_o present_a universal_a church_n authority_n for_o this_o have_v be_v a_o impious_a speech_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o unfit_a for_o a_o holy_a man_n much_o more_o for_o a_o bishop_n and_o contrary_a to_o many_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o author_n as_o particular_o lib._n confess_v 9_o c._n 5._o in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v give_v so_o excellent_a a_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n through_o all_o land_n unless_o he_o will_v that_o by_o it_o god_n shall_v be_v believe_v but_o either_o he_o use_v the_o imperfect_a tense_n for_o the_o preterperfect_a after_o the_o african_a dialect_n as_o he_o do_v in_o a_o like_a speech_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr beata_fw-la vita_fw-la sic_fw-la exarsi_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la illas_fw-la vellem_fw-la anchoras_fw-la rumpere_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o nonnullorum_fw-la ●ominum_fw-la existimatio_fw-la commoveret_fw-la where_o commoveret_fw-la be_v use_v for_o commovisset_fw-la which_o be_v the_o same_o word_n here_o use_v and_o so_o the_o sense_n be_v i_o myself_o very_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v move_v i_o note_v thereby_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o first_o believe_v not_o the_o sole_a reason_n or_o motive_n of_o his_o present_a believe_v and_o to_o this_o sense_n the_o speech_n obt●mperavi_n dicentibus_fw-la credit_n evangelio_n ipsi_fw-la evangeli●_n catholicis_fw-la pr●edicantibus_fw-la credidi_fw-la recte_fw-la credidisti_fw-la catholicis_fw-la laudantibus_fw-la evangelium_fw-la quibus_fw-la prae_fw-la ipientibus_fw-la evangelio_n credidi_fw-la per_fw-la ●os_v illi_fw-la credideram_fw-la which_o express_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o he_o believe_v and_o that_o be_v not_o authority_n of_o empire_n in_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o infallible_a function_n and_o right_a to_o define_v what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o person_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o holiness_n honesty_n wisdom_n and_o such_o other_o act_n of_o god_n providence_n mention_v in_o the_o chapter_n before_o which_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o church_n 3._o or_o else_o he_o speak_v upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o believe_v by_o reason_n of_o its_o most_o sincere_a wisdom_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o few_o spiritual_a man_n come_v in_o this_o life_n then_o in_o that_o case_n nothing_o will_v move_v he_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n unto_o which_o sense_n the_o word_n chap._n 4._o and_o the_o series_n of_o the_o dispute_n seem_v to_o lead_v and_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la notis_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 14._o to_o reconcile_v augustine_n word_n in_o his_o dispute_n against_o donatist_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o against_o manichaeus_n his_o epistle_n of_o the_o foundation_n that_o the_o church_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n not_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n say_v that_o he_o speak_v upon_o supposition_n because_o the_o manichee_n do_v admit_v miracle_n but_o deny_v the_o scripture_n which_o countenance_v this_o last_o sense_n any_o of_o these_o way_n which_o have_v their_o probability_n the_o speech_n may_v be_v right_a but_o not_o for_o h._n t._n his_o purpose_n certain_o they_o ascribe_v no_o infallibility_n or_o supreme_a judicature_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o church_n if_o the_o speech_n be_v not_o understand_v in_o the_o last_o sense_n of_o not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n on_o supposition_n of_o the_o exclude_v the_o innate_a evidence_n of_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n therein_o or_o if_o the_o second_o sense_n hold_v not_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o what_o he_o have_v not_o do_v at_o first_o conversion_n it_o it_o certain_a the_o first_o sense_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o apostle_n commend_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o universal_a tradition_n in_o other_o sense_n special_o that_o in_o which_o the_o papist_n allege_v it_o it_o be_v a_o impious_a speech_n and_o contrary_a to_o many_o other_o place_n in_o his_o work_n sure_o he_o that_o read_v his_o first_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o donatist_n will_v find_v he_o after_o cyprian_n full_o against_o the_o ascribe_v to_o any_o bishop_n on_o earth_n supreme_a judicature_n over_o other_o bishop_n or_o make_v any_o church_n or_o council_n infallible_a but_o assert_v that_o the_o former_a full_a general_n council_n may_v be_v mend_v by_o the_o late_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o determination_n of_o any_o pope_n or_o council_n or_o church_n to_o be_v rest_v on_o as_o infallible_a in_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o all_o this_o empty_a scribble_n of_o h._n t._n he_o yet_o add_v i_o now_o resume_v the_o principal_a argument_n and_o retort_v it_o thus_o upon_o our_o adversary_n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n and_o definition_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o the_o like_a of_o all_o other_o sectary_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o her_o proposal_n or_o definition_n of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o major_n have_v be_v full_o prove_v before_o the_o minor_a must_v be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n because_o they_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o be_v heretick●_n in_o the_o revolt_n from_o our_o church_n but_o by_o false_o pretend_v the_o whole_a church_n err_v in_o faith_n and_o teach_v idolatry_n and_o superstition_n for_o nine_o or_o ten_o hundred_o year_n together_o till_o they_o begin_v their_o bless_a reformation_n a_o most_o blasphemous_a evasion_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v before_o by_o which_o they_o have_v exclude_v themselves_o from_o all_o possible_a assurance_n of_o true_a faith_n or_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o to_o arrogate_v infallibility_n to_o themselves_o which_o they_o deny_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v a_o most_o frontless_a impudence_n and_o then_o he_o add_v his_o note_n who_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o infallible_a church_n which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o article_n answ_n 1._o understanding_n by_o the_o protestant_n church_n that_o church_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o year_n 1517._o term_v protestant_n from_o the_o protest_v against_o the_o decree_n make_v at_o spires_n anno_fw-la 1529._o as_o sleidan_n lib._n 6._o com._n report_n the_o conclusion_n be_v grant_v we_o yield_v the_o protestant_a church_n or_o church_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o member_n of_o it_o conceive_v it_o will_v be_v indeed_o to_o hold_v the_o error_n of_o donatist_n if_o they_o shall_v appropriate_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o themselves_o or_o count_v all_o out_o of_o it_o that_o be_v not_o of_o that_o party_n as_o the_o romanist_n do_v who_o be_v in_o this_o successor_n to_o the_o donatist_n but_o if_o by_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_n mean_v the_o whole_a number_n of_o they_o who_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o the_o fundamental_o which_o now_o the_o protestant_n hold_v so_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n 2._o we_o deny_v that_o the_o protestant_n be_v just_o term_v sectary_n mean_v by_o sectary_n a_o party_n which_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o primitive_a christian_a faith_n or_o do_v separate_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o it_o be_v or_o be_v at_o any_o time_n in_o its_o integrity_n 3._o we_o deny_v the_o major_a to_o have_v be_v prove_v understand_v it_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o this_o or_o any_o age_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o and_o do_v not_o concur_v in_o the_o proposal_n and_o definition_n of_o faith_n 4._o we_o grant_v the_o minor_a but_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o we_o say_v it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o acquit_v ourselves_o from_o heresy_n than_o by_o pretend_v the_o whole_a church_n err_v in_o faith_n and_o teach_v idolatry_n and_o superstition_n for_o nine_o or_o ten_o hundred_o year_n together_o till_o the_o reformation_n begin_v 1517._o yea_o we_o say_v that_o the_o error_n in_o faith_n the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n we_o now_o accuse_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o ●_o be_v many_o of_o
this_o allegation_n do_v no_o whit_n infringe_v the_o objection_n h._n t._n add_v object_n st._n peter_n err_v in_o faith_n when_o st._n paul_n contradict_v he_o to_o the_o face_n answ_n no_o it_o be_v only_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o conversation_n according_a to_o tertullian_n lib._n prescript_n cap._n 23._o by_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o refuse_v to_o eat_v with_o the_o gentile_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n gal._n 2._o 12._o i_o reply_v it_o be_v true_a tertullian_n say_v that_o peter_n be_v fact_n be_v conversationis_fw-la vitium_fw-la non_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la a_o vice_n of_o his_o conversation_n not_o of_o his_o preach_v and_o he_o show_v wherein_o that_o he_o preach_v not_o another_o god_n or_o christ_n or_o ●ope_v but_o this_o do_v not_o show_v that_o peter_n err_v not_o at_o all_o in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o that_o tertullian_n think_v so_o yea_o the_o very_a word_n of_o paul_n gal._n 2._o 15._o that_o he_o do_v not_o walk_v upright_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n show_v that_o his_o practice_n do_v infer_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o word_n why_o compe●lest_v thou_o the_o gentile_n to_o judaize_v which_o can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o suggest_v to_o they_o that_o opinion_n that_o they_o must_v do_v so_o show_v he_o teach_v the_o gentile_n a_o error_n in_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n contrary_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n act_v 15._o it_o follow_v object_n christ_n blame_v the_o incredulity_n of_o his_o disciple_n in_o not_o believe_v his_o resurrection_n st._n mark_v 16._o 14._o answ_n he_o only_o blame_v their_o slowness_n in_o believe_v not_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n or_o loss_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o see_v they_o have_v it_o not_o before_o for_o they_o understand_v not_o what_o christ_n have_v say_v to_o they_o of_o it_o as_o appear_v st._n luke_n 18._o &_o 1_o st._n john_n 20._o they_o do_v not_o know_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n at_o once_o but_o by_o degree_n i_o reply_v the_o question_n now_o be_v of_o infallibility_n not_o of_o apostasy_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v not_o infallible_a if_o they_o do_v actual_o err_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o do_v err_v who_o do_v not_o believe_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v sure_o a_o error_n in_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o much_o the_o great_a in_o that_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o christ_n himself_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o tell_v by_o woman_n that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o of_o this_o number_n peter_n be_v one_o after_o he_o be_v term_v peter_n and_o according_a to_o the_o romanist_n doctrine_n have_v be_v make_v prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n now_o if_o peter_n do_v err_v then_o in_o faith_n much_o more_o may_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v his_o successor_n and_o to_o derive_v their_o privilege_n from_o his_o grant_n and_o consequent_o can_v pretend_v to_o any_o more_o than_o he_o have_v again_o object_n every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n answ_n in_o his_o own_o particular_a be_v it_o so_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v and_o will_v teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n he_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o truth_n that_o contradict_v it_o and_o albeit_o man_n of_o himself_o may_v err_v yet_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o may_v be_v guide_v so_o that_o ●e_n err_v not_o i_o reply_v the_o word_n that_o make_v every_o man_n a_o liar_n do_v speak_v this_o of_o man_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o god_n be_v true_a and_o thereby_o show_v that_o this_o be_v make_v god_n prerogative_n to_o be_v true_a without_o any_o error_n and_o that_o no_o mere_a man_n be_v such_o and_o therefore_o not_o infallible_a and_o consequent_o neither_o roman_a bishop_n nor_o council_n nor_o church_n infallible_a nor_o do_v the_o answer_n avoid_v it_o for_o if_o they_o be_v every_o one_o a_o liar_n in_o his_o own_o particular_a they_o must_v be_v so_o in_o a_o community_n or_o council_n as_o if_o each_o person_n in_o his_o own_o particular_a be_v blind_a the_o whole_a company_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o too_o i_o grant_v the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v and_o will_v teach_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n mean_v the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_a all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n and_o he_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o truth_n that_o contradict_v it_o but_o that_o he_o will_v teach_v any_o or_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o their_o bishop_n and_o teacher_n or_o any_o one_o bishop_n all_o truth_n in_o any_o point_n controvert_v so_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v infallible_a judge_n in_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n be_v more_o than_o yet_o be_v prove_v by_o h._n t._n or_o any_o other_o and_o if_o man_n may_v of_o himself_o err_v though_o he_o may_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v guide_v so_o that_o he_o err_v not_o then_o unless_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o in_o this_o or_o that_o definition_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v so_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n no_o man_n can_v rest_v upon_o his_o definition_n as_o infallible_a but_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o either_o a_o council_n or_o pope_n who_o be_v confess_o fallible_a of_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o do_v implore_v the_o holy_a ghost_n help_n as_o know_v they_o may_v err_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v but_o by_o examine_v their_o definition_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o know_v they_o have_v not_o err_v and_o consequent_o such_o a_o not_o err_v being_n uncertain_a their_o definition_n can_v at_o no_o time_n without_o proof_n from_o scripture_n which_o each_o person_n be_v to_o try_v for_o himself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a assurance_n to_o build_v a_o firm_a faith_n upon_o which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o next_o objection_n object_n try_v all_o thing_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a 1_o thess_n 5._o believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n if_o they_o be_v from_o god_n 1_o john_n 4._o answ_n try_v they_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o be_v the_o touchstone_n not_o the_o dead_a letter_n humane_a reason_n or_o the_o private_a spirit_n i_o reply_v if_o christian_n be_v to_o try_v all_o thing_n than_o they_o be_v to_o try_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n authority_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o trial_n and_o indeed_o the_o precept_n have_v be_v ridiculous_a if_o he_o have_v bid_v they_o try_v the_o church_n definition_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o no_o and_o the_o spirit_n whether_o of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n authority_n unless_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o something_o else_o which_o be_v of_o itself_o credible_a for_o when_o the_o church_n define_v for_o example_n sake_n transubstantiation_n to_o try_v this_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o church_n have_v define_v it_o if_o we_o must_v rest_v on_o its_o authority_n without_o examine_v its_o proof_n which_o will_v be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o say_v try_v not_o at_o all_o what_o the_o church_n propound_v but_o believe_v it_o but_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a rule_n till_o we_o know_v who_o be_v the_o church_n by_o who_o authority_n and_o what_o be_v their_o authority_n by_o which_o we_o must_v try_v especial_o consider_v it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o papist_n whether_o a_o pope_n or_o council_n joint_o or_o several_o be_v the_o church_n even_o h._n t._n pag._n 70._o speak_v as_o if_o he_o will_v fain_o take_v in_o all_o but_o be_v doubtful_a on_o which_o to_o fasten_v nor_o be_v they_o agree_v whether_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v superior_a nor_o which_o council_n be_v approve_v which_o reprobate_a nor_o how_o far_o that_o which_o be_v approve_v be_v so_o the_o rule_n be_v more_o uncertain_a when_o council_n be_v against_o council_n and_o pope_n against_o pope_n the_o truth_n be_v papist_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n be_v not_o allow_v by_o their_o doctrine_n to_o try_v what_o their_o church_n that_o be_v their_o pope_n and_o prelate_n teach_v they_o but_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o with_o a_o implicit_a assent_n without_o any_o trial_n or_o explicit_a knowledge_n as_o for_o apostolical_a tradition_n we_o like_v it_o well_o to_o try_v by_o it_o if_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n and_o not_o in_o pretence_n only_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o which_o case_n we_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o such_o say_n as_o pretend_v to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2_o thess_n 2._o 2._o tell_v we_o there_o be_v such_o pretension_n
private_a reason_n which_o faith_n often_o be_v enforce_v to_o captivate_v but_o into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o the_o church_n propose_v i_o believe_v it_o say_v tertullian_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a viz._n to_o humane_a reason_n i_o reply_v 1._o chillingworth_n make_v not_o reason_n the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n nor_o any_o protestant_n therefore_o the_o conclusion_n be_v ill_o father_v on_o they_o 2._o the_o reason_n of_o h._n t._n his_o denial_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v insufficient_a for_o it_o suppose_v the_o consequence_n to_o imply_v that_o our_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o private_a reason_n and_o this_o private_a reason_n judge_v that_o only_a to_o be_v true_a of_o which_o it_o conceive_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a but_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o that_o make_v reason_n the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n neither_o resolve_v ultimate_o their_o act_n of_o faith_n into_o private_a reason_n neither_o do_v they_o conceive_v they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v only_o what_o they_o conceive_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o humane_a reason_n but_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o god_n authority_n as_o the_o formal_a and_o ultimate_a reason_n of_o their_o believe_v and_o make_v their_o reason_n only_o the_o mean_n or_o instrument_n by_o which_o they_o find_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v that_o which_o they_o believe_v not_o exclude_v their_o teacher_n credit_n and_o church_n example_n as_o a_o fit_a motive_n to_o hearken_v to_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n credible_a which_o opinion_n be_v confirm_v by_o this_o author_n own_o word_n make_v faith_n a_o act_n of_o reason_n and_o discourse_n and_o approbation_n of_o reason_n always_o a_o previous_a and_o necessary_a condition_n to_o it_o and_o therefore_o in_o all_o act_n of_o faith_n even_o when_o it_o rest_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n yet_o eachmans_n private_a reason_n be_v the_o judge_n for_o himself_o discern_v in_o controversy_n why_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v one_o and_o not_o another_o all_o the_o difference_n be_v the_o papist_n think_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n pope_n supremacy_n etc._n etc._n because_o he_o take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a the_o protestant_n do_v not_o believe_v they_o because_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o say_v thus_o which_o alone_o he_o take_v for_o a_o infallible_a rule_n to_o judge_v by_o in_o such_o controversy_n whether_o papist_n faith_n be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v have_v be_v before_o consider_v a_o little_a and_o will_v more_o in_o that_o which_o follow_v to_o tertullia_n word_n i_o can_v return_v no_o answer_n till_o i_o know_v where_o to_o find_v they_o as_o they_o be_v here_o cite_v they_o seem_v nor_o right_v yet_o again_o say_v h._n t._n ob._n there_o be_v no_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n answ_n yes_o a_o more_o universal_a one_o then_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o believe_v on_o that_o score_n if_o at_o all_o for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o book_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n which_o have_v not_o be_v reject_v by_o some_o heretic_n or_o other_o if_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o a_o universal_a tradition_n for_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n that_o some_o one_o or_o two_o general_a council_n have_v set_v down_o the_o number_n and_o name_n of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n though_o not_o without_o some_o variety_n and_o that_o the_o father_n have_v give_v testimony_n to_o they_o some_o to_o some_o book_n some_o to_o other_o but_o few_o to_o all_o and_o that_o the_o church_n in_o after_o age_n have_v accept_v they_o for_o such_o how_o much_o more_o universal_a be_v the_o tradition_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o be_v virtual_o decide_v and_o attest_v by_o the_o anathema_n and_o definition_n of_o all_o the_o general_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v condemn_v all_o who_o do_v not_o humble_o obey_v and_o subscribe_v to_o they_o every_o decision_n be_v attest_v by_o all_o the_o father_n no_o one_o contradict_v or_o condemn_v the_o stile_n and_o most_o unanimous_o accept_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o after_o age_n i_o reply_v the_o speech_n of_o h._n t._n here_o that_o there_o be_v a_o more_o universal_a apostolical_a tradition_n for_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o church_n diffuse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n unanimous_o teach_v but_o also_o the_o church_n represent_v in_o a_o council_n perfect_o ecumenical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v call_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o approve_a by_o the_o pope_n its_o infallibility_n in_o definition_n of_o faith_n then_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v so_o monstrous_o false_a and_o so_o pernicious_a as_o tend_v to_o the_o undermine_v of_o the_o fabric_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o it_o show_v a_o impudent_a face_n and_o a_o impious_a heart_n in_o the_o assertor_n for_o 1._o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v by_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o moses_n to_o christ_n and_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o have_v testify_v that_o to_o they_o be_v commit_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n rom._n 3._o 1_o 2._o and_o this_o witness_v by_o the_o jew_n unto_o the_o death_n and_o by_o the_o compliment_n and_o event_n verify_v it_o and_o though_o it_o be_v that_o some_o heretic_n have_v be_v adversary_n to_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n yet_o scarce_o any_o but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v little_o better_o than_o phrenetick_a have_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a however_o they_o have_v conceive_v they_o not_o bind_v and_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n though_o some_o part_n have_v be_v a_o little_a while_n somewhat_o doubt_v of_o in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n by_o some_o few_o yet_o the_o rest_n have_v have_v universal_a and_o undoubted_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o primitive_a teacher_n who_o witness_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n by_o many_o evident_a undeniable_a divine_a miracle_n and_o by_o their_o martyrdom_n by_o which_o also_o in_o after_o age_n many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o other_o christian_n give_v testimony_n to_o it_o and_o since_o the_o church_n greek_n and_o latin_a protestant_n and_o popish_a heretical_a and_o orthodox_n in_o asia_n africa_n europe_n have_v attest_v it_o as_o divine_a but_o for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o this_o author_n mean_v it_o how_o little_a have_v be_v bring_v appear_v by_o the_o answer_n here_o make_v and_o that_o much_o may_v be_v say_v against_o it_o will_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v yea_o i_o dare_v bodily_a say_v that_o as_o h._n t._n hold_v it_o no_o one_o council_n or_o father_n of_o esteem_n hold_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o the_o first_o thousand_o year_n from_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o i_o think_v i_o may_v say_v for_o half_a a_o thousand_o more_o but_o many_o not_o only_o of_o those_o who_o be_v reckon_v for_o heretic_n by_o romanist_n but_o also_o such_o as_o have_v be_v judge_v catholic_n have_v oppose_v it_o in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n yea_o whole_a nation_n emperor_n king_n and_o state_n have_v oppose_v the_o definition_n which_o the_o so_o term_v general_n council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v and_o many_o learned_a man_n have_v write_v against_o it_o none_o die_v for_o it_o in_o that_o time_n nor_o be_v any_o miracle_n wrought_v to_o confirm_v it_o nor_o have_v the_o question_n of_o some_o few_o of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n either_o by_o some_o heretic_n or_o a_o few_o father_n for_o a_o while_o abate_v the_o credit_n of_o those_o parcel_n question_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o the_o world_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o believe_v the_o canon_n as_o i_o know_v nothing_o but_o uncharitableness_n can_v make_v this_o author_n question_n whether_o we_o do_v only_o on_o that_o score_n as_o we_o do_v not_o yet_o we_o have_v far_o more_o abundant_a tradition_n for_o it_o then_o be_v for_o the_o church_n imagine_v infallibility_n 2._o i_o say_v the_o anathema_n and_o definition_n be_v neither_o formal_a nor_o virtual_a proof_n of_o a_o universal_a tradition_n or_o attestation_n to_o the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o 1._o p._n 7._o he_o confess_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n be_v no_o council_n nor_o in_o the_o ten_o in_o which_o any_o controversy_n of_o moment_n be_v decide_v p._n 25._o and_o therefore_o here_o this_o universal_a tradition_n fail_v 2._o those_o that_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o reject_v by_o they_o and_o those_o which_o be_v not_o ecumenical_a have_v not_o use_v such_o anathema_n
maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a l._n 19_o moral_a c._n 17._o as_o for_o the_o three_o synod_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v not_o a_o ecumenical_a synod_n and_o it_o be_v over_o balance_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n before_o it_o who_o omit_v they_o and_o if_o the_o ancient_n term_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n canonical_a or_o divine_a they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o ruffinus_n his_o explication_n in_o his_o exposition_n on_o the_o creed_n and_o other_o that_o they_o be_v canonical_a in_o a_o sort_n as_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o history_n or_o moral_a sentence_n but_o not_o so_o as_o that_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o h._n t._n further_o say_v ob._n the_o father_n be_v err_v some_o in_o one_o thing_n some_o in_o another_o answ_n a_o part_n i_o grant_v all_o together_o speak_v of_o any_o one_o age_n i_o deny_v and_o they_o all_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o do_v likewise_o our_o schoolman_n who_o differ_v only_o in_o opinion_n concern_v school_n point_v undefined_a not_o in_o faith_n i_o reply_v 1._o that_o the_o father_n of_o some_o age_n do_v general_o hold_v error_n be_v apparent_a in_o many_o particular_n augustine_n hold_v it_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v necessary_a for_o infant_n as_o appear_v l._n 1_o de_fw-fr pec_fw-la merito_fw-la &_o remiss_a c._n 24._o and_o elsewhere_o and_o maldonat_a on_o john_n 6._o v_o 53._o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o augustin_n and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o and_o that_o it_o prevail_v in_o the_o church_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 21._o c._n 4._o can_n 4._o say_v if_o any_o say_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o little_a one_o afore_o they_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o sundry_a other_o point_n as_o that_o of_o the_o millenary_a opinion_n the_o soul_n not_o see_v god_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n 2._o that_o all_o the_o father_n do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o asian_a bishop_n opposition_n to_o victor_n about_o easter_n to_o stephen_n about_o rebaptisation_n by_o cyprian_a and_o other_o to_o boniface_n zozimus_n and_o celestin_n about_o appeal_n from_o africa_n to_o rome_n by_o aurelius_n augustinus_n and_o a_o whole_a council_n 3._o that_o the_o schoolman_n differ_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n define_v be_v manifest_a in_o peter_n lombard_n l._n 1._o send_v do_v 17._o who_o hold_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v the_o charity_n whereby_o we_o love_v god_n and_o the_o dissent_n from_o he_o in_o that_o point_n the_o difference_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n above_o a_o council_n power_n to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n certainty_n of_o faith_n concern_v a_o man_n own_o justification_n god_n predetermination_n of_o man_n will_n and_o many_o more_o yet_o controvert_v between_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n jansenist_n and_o molinist_n 4._o all_o submit_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o some_o appeal_n from_o he_o to_o a_o council_n other_o by_o withstand_v in_o dispute_n and_o otherwise_o decline_v his_o sentence_n in_o their_o cause_n of_o which_o the_o opposition_n against_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o his_o interdict_v by_o the_o republic_n of_o venice_n about_o their_o power_n over_o ecclesiastic_n be_v a_o famous_a instance_n evident_o show_v that_o all_o that_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n acknowledge_v not_o such_o a_o supremacy_n and_o infallibility_n to_o it_o as_o the_o modern_a jesuit_n ascribe_v to_o it_o yet_o again_o say_v h._n t._n ob._n st._n augustin_n tell_v st._n hierom_n that_o he_o esteem_v none_o but_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n to_o have_v be_v infallible_a in_o all_o they_o write_v and_o not_o to_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n answ_n neither_o do_v we_o we_o esteem_v not_o the_o writer_n of_o council_n infallible_a in_o all_o they_o write_v nor_o yet_o council_n themselves_o but_o only_o in_o the_o ecumenical_a decree_n or_o definition_n of_o faith_n i_o reply_v augustin_n epist_n 19_o to_o hierom_n do_v not_o only_o say_v thus_o i_o confess_v to_o thy_o charity_n that_o i_o have_v learned_a to_o give_v this_o reverence_n and_o honour_n only_o to_o those_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v now_o call_v canonical_a that_o i_o do_v most_o firm_o believe_v no_o author_n of_o they_o to_o have_v err_v any_o thing_n in_o writing_n but_o he_o add_v also_o but_o i_o so_o read_v other_o that_o how_o much_o soever_o they_o excel_v in_o holiness_n and_o doctrine_n i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o true_a because_o they_o have_v so_o think_v but_o because_o they_o can_v persuade_v i_o either_o by_o those_o canonical_a author_n or_o by_o probable_a reason_n that_o it_o abhor_v not_o from_o that_o which_o be_v true_a which_o plain_o show_v 1._o that_o he_o count_v only_o the_o writer_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o those_o book_n infallible_a 2._o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o other_o however_o excellent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o they_o so_o think_v 3._o that_o their_o sentence_n prevail_v with_o he_o so_o far_o as_o its_o proof_n do_v persuade_v 4._o that_o this_o proof_n must_v be_v by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o probable_a reason_n h._n t._n add_v ob._n st._n augustin_n epist_n 112._o say_v we_o be_v only_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n without_o dubitation_n but_o for_o other_o witness_n we_o may_v believe_v or_o not_o believe_v they_o according_a to_o the_o weight_n of_o their_o authority_n answ_n he_o speak_v in_o a_o particular_a case_n in_o which_o nothing_o have_v be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n namely_o whether_o god_n can_v be_v see_v with_o corporal_a eye_n but_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v and_o therefore_o according_a to_o st._n augustin_n to_o be_v believe_v without_o dubitation_n i_o reply_v though_o he_o speak_v upon_o occasion_n of_o one_o particular_a case_n yet_o the_o speech_n be_v universal_a but_o for_o other_o witness_n or_o testimony_n beside_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o which_o any_o thing_n be_v persuade_v to_o be_v believe_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o believe_v or_o not_o to_o believe_v as_o thou_o shall_v weigh_v how_o much_o moment_n those_o thing_n have_v or_o not_o have_v to_o beget_v faith_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o exception_n concern_v a_o thing_n define_v by_o the_o church_n yea_o the_o opinion_n of_o augustin_n be_v full_a and_o plain_a in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n ch_n 3._o to_o take_v away_o infallibility_n from_o any_o bishop_n or_o council_n ecumenical_a which_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o translate_v to_o show_v how_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o austin_n to_o make_v any_o council_n after_o the_o apostle_n infallible_a who_o know_v not_o say_v he_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n as_o well_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o its_o certain_a bound_n and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o late_a letter_n of_o bishop_n that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o doubt_v or_o dispute_v of_o it_o at_o all_o whether_o that_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v write_v in_o it_o be_v true_a or_o right_o but_o for_o the_o letter_n of_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v or_o be_v write_v after_o the_o canon_n confirm_v it_o be_v lawful_a that_o they_o be_v reprehend_v if_o perhaps_o in_o they_o any_o thing_n have_v deviate_v or_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n from_o truth_n both_o perhaps_o by_o the_o wise_a speech_n of_o any_o man_n more_o skilful_a in_o that_o thing_n and_o by_o the_o more_o grave_a authority_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o by_o council_n and_o those_o council_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o single_a region_n or_o province_n be_v to_o give_v place_n without_o any_o wind_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o more_o full_a council_n which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o oft_o time_n those_o former_a full_a council_n may_v be_v mend_v by_o late_a when_o by_o some_o trial_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v open_a which_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o know_v which_o do_v lie_v hide_v without_o any_o smoke_n of_o sacrilegious_a pride_n without_o any_o swell_a neck_n of_o arrogance_n without_o any_o contention_n of_o wan_a envy_n with_o holy_a humility_n with_o catholic_n peace_n with_o christian_a charity_n yet_o once_o more_o say_v h._n t._n ob._n st._n athanasius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n
be_v to_o be_v see_v or_o hear_v in_o they_o be_v more_o like_o the_o temple_n of_o pagan_a god_n than_o christian_a assembly_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n christian_n have_v no_o image_n in_o their_o place_n of_o meeting_n but_o popish_a temple_n be_v full_a of_o image_n and_o picture_n and_o the_o service_n to_o they_o like_o the_o pagan_n to_o their_o idol_n bow_v down_o to_o they_o burn_v incense_n before_o they_o offer_v gift_n to_o they_o lift_v up_o and_o adore_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o outward_a pomp_n of_o light_n garment_n garnish_v of_o the_o house_n attendance_n of_o officer_n suit_v better_a to_o womanish_a and_o childish_a person_n than_o holy_a spiritual_a christian_n their_o mass_n which_o be_v that_o they_o glory_n in_o be_v nothing_o like_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n nor_o use_v to_o that_o end_n for_o which_o he_o appoint_v his_o last_o supper_n to_o be_v continue_v but_o a_o mere_a show_n with_o many_o ridiculous_a gesture_n motion_n action_n with_o lamp_n burn_v in_o the_o day_n cope_n and_o garment_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o make_v it_o unlike_o the_o primitive_a simplicity_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v without_o they_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n their_o many_o holy_a day_n be_v just_o heretofore_o complain_v of_o as_o a_o great_a grievance_n to_o people_n and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a happiness_n to_o be_v free_v from_o they_o all_o as_o beget_v idleness_n luxury_n and_o penury_n the_o lord_n day_n except_v which_o be_v no_o where_o among_o they_o observe_v as_o a_o day_n set_v apart_o for_o god_n and_o spend_v in_o prayer_n hear_v read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n and_o such_o other_o duty_n of_o religion_n as_o god_n have_v prescribe_v but_o after_o some_o time_n spend_v in_o hear_v mass_n and_o evensong_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o day_n be_v spend_v in_o feast_v sport_v and_o in_o many_o place_n in_o such_o worldly_a affair_n as_o show_v little_a mind_v of_o god_n or_o any_o heavenly_a affection_n their_o church_n be_v open_a in_o the_o week_n day_n upon_o a_o ignorant_a and_o superstitious_a conceit_n as_o if_o god_n will_v hear_v they_o there_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o place_n or_o the_o relic_n of_o some_o saint_n or_o some_o other_o fond_a imagination_n which_o their_o priest_n or_o ancestor_n instill_v into_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o say_v there_o their_o ave-maries_n and_o pater-noster_n by_o tale_n without_o understanding_n or_o attention_n to_o what_o they_o say_v or_o do_v or_o to_o god_n but_o observe_v only_o their_o gesture_n after_o their_o manner_n stay_v out_o their_o time_n without_o learning_n any_o thing_n which_o may_v improve_v they_o in_o christian_a knowledge_n but_o in_o their_o house_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n call_v upon_o god_n with_o understanding_n and_o feel_n of_o their_o want_n the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v neglect_v and_o many_o other_o duty_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v be_v omit_v and_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o much_o wantonness_n and_o other_o evil_n occasion_v if_o credible_a person_n say_v true_a and_o cloak_v by_o the_o often_o repair_v of_o person_n to_o their_o church_n that_o there_o be_v more_o preach_v and_o catechise_v among_o papist_n than_o among_o protestant_n be_v strange_a news_n to_o i_o nor_o do_v i_o think_v any_o london_n merchant_n or_o other_o person_n who_o have_v travel_v into_o italy_n or_o spain_n will_v believe_v it_o what_o now_o be_v do_v i_o can_v speak_v of_o my_o own_o knowledge_n as_o have_v not_o travel_v into_o those_o country_n but_o what_o i_o find_v in_o author_n who_o i_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o believe_v make_v i_o who_o have_v know_v london_n oxford_n bristol_n worcester_n and_o other_o part_n of_o england_n and_o their_o preach_a and_o catechise_v conceive_v that_o h._n t._n tell_v here_o a_o manifest_a untruth_n however_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o discern_v by_o read_v the_o sermon_n and_o catechism_n of_o both_o which_o be_v print_v that_o their_o preach_n and_o catechise_n how_o often_o soever_o it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o gospel_n doctrine_n spiritual_a truth_n and_o holy_a direction_n come_v as_o short_a of_o the_o english_a protestant_a preacher_n sermon_n and_o catechise_v as_o lead_v or_o dross_n do_v of_o gold_n when_o drury_n preach_v at_o blackfriars_a his_o sermon_n be_v of_o popish_a penance_n and_o such_o like_a superstitious_a point_n of_o popery_n the_o history_n of_o the_o quarrel_n between_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o and_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o venice_n by_o friar_n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o jesuit_n when_o they_o be_v expel_v out_o of_o venice_n that_o this_o be_v out_o of_o their_o instruction_n to_o be_v very_o spare_v in_o preach_v of_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o relation_n of_o their_o doctines_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o jesuitism_n publish_v by_o a_o jansenist_n show_v what_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o jesuit_n now_o the_o popular_a preacher_n instill_v into_o the_o people_n of_o france_n their_o fast_a and_o pray_v if_o it_o be_v such_o as_o their_o casuist_n describe_v be_v a_o nullity_n or_o a_o mockery_n that_o which_o they_o call_v fast_v being_n only_o a_o change_n of_o food_n sometime_o such_o as_o a_o glutton_n will_v choose_v to_o please_v his_o appetite_n and_o differ_v a_o meal_n for_o some_o hour_n which_o be_v no_o fast_v and_o their_o pray_a no_o ascend_v of_o the_o mind_n to_o god_n or_o make_v know_v their_o request_n to_o he_o but_o say_v word_n many_o of_o they_o that_o contain_v no_o petition_n like_o parrot_n without_o understanding_n and_o in_o a_o great_a part_n call_v upon_o decease_a saint_n and_o angel_n the_o multitude_n of_o their_o sacrament_n show_v the_o grossness_n of_o their_o ignorance_n and_o greatness_n of_o their_o superstition_n matrimony_n be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n give_v to_o christian_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o they_o but_o a_o institution_n of_o god_n before_o the_o fal●_n of_o adam_n common_a to_o all_o mankind_n for_o the_o lawful_a propagate_a thereof_o unction_n be_v no_o ordinary_a rite_n for_o sanctification_n but_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o special_a gift_n of_o heal_a penance_n be_v no_o special_a sacrament_n but_o the_o common_a duty_n of_o all_o man_n auricular_a confession_n be_v a_o unjust_a imposition_n priest_n authoritative_a judicial_a absolution_n be_v a_o mere_a delusion_n confirmation_n be_v either_o a_o fond_a imitation_n of_o the_o apostle_n act_n in_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o be_v in_o its_o genuine_a use_n a_o appendix_n to_o baptism_n order_n be_v a_o rite_n proper_a to_o the_o clergy_n as_o it_o be_v term_v the_o eucharist_n and_o baptism_n be_v indeed_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o give_v grace_n by_o the_o work_n do_v but_o by_o the_o one_o to_o testify_v our_o profession_n the_o other_o our_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n neither_o name_n nor_o thing_n of_o sacrament_n as_o papist_n define_v it_o be_v from_o scripture_n nor_o be_v any_o thing_n almost_o right_o in_o papist_n doctrine_n or_o use_n of_o these_o rite_n but_o their_o use_n of_o they_o be_v almost_o quite_o change_v into_o another_o thing_n then_o what_o christ_n institute_v and_o therefore_o the_o more_o they_o be_v frequent_v the_o less_o be_v there_o of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o more_o of_o vain_a superstition_n there_o be_v far_o better_a administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n among_o the_o protestant_n who_o use_v it_o after_o christ_n institution_n to_o remember_v his_o death_n not_o as_o papist_n for_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a with_o addition_n of_o many_o histrionical_a mimical_a invention_n of_o man_n and_o mangle_v it_o by_o the_o half_a in_o keep_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n and_o make_v a_o private_a mass_n of_o a_o communion_n baptism_n be_v better_a administer_v without_o addition_n of_o oil_n cream_n and_o spittle_n and_o ephphatha_n and_o such_o toy_n as_o papist_n use_n ordination_n be_v better_a use_v by_o protestant_n who_o ordain_v preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o sacrifice_v priest_n and_o yet_o in_o these_o and_o in_o other_o matter_n some_o thing_n may_v be_v better_v which_o through_o the_o great_a aberration_n from_o the_o primitive_a institution_n remain_v yet_o to_o be_v amend_v as_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o woman_n as_o he_o call_v they_o not_o only_o the_o relation_n of_o protestant_n but_o also_o of_o popish_a writer_n give_v we_o cause_n to_o think_v there_o be_v little_a of_o religion_n or_o morality_n in_o they_o except_o gluttony_n idleness_n whoredom_n and_o other_o lewdness_n be_v religion_n the_o common_a proverb_n make_v a_o friar_n a_o liar_n if_o they_o free_o forsake_v
use_v some_o of_o they_o perhaps_o fall_v out_o according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o such_o disease_n as_o be_v say_v to_o be_v cure_v that_o of_o the_o heal_n of_o two_o cappadocian_o have_v too_o much_o suspicion_n of_o counterfeit_v and_o augustin_n himself_o though_o he_o relate_v something_n of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n yet_o make_v none_o of_o they_o like_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v more_o frequent_a and_o open_a and_o manifest_a in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o adversary_n as_o the_o raise_n of_o lazarus_n and_o many_o more_o be_v and_o therefore_o he_o allege_v they_o for_o the_o stop_n of_o their_o mouth_n who_o call_v for_o miracle_n rather_o than_o for_o any_o evident_a proof_n of_o religion_n use_v this_o very_a preface_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n why_o say_v they_o be_v not_o those_o miracle_n now_o do_v which_o you_o say_v have_v be_v do_v i_o may_v say_v indeed_o they_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o world_n shall_v believe_v for_o this_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v whosoever_o as_o yet_o seek_v after_o prodigy_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v be_v himself_o a_o great_a prodigy_n who_o the_o world_n believe_v believe_v not_o but_o whatever_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o the_o relation_n of_o augustin_n in_o that_o place_n certain_z it_o be_v that_o augustin_n ch_n 9_o 10._o use_v they_o not_o to_o give_v testimony_n to_o the_o confirmation_n either_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o any_o of_o their_o doctrine_n nor_o for_o the_o worship_v of_o stephen_n the_o martyr_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o saint_n but_o only_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o they_o in_o their_o death_n give_v testimony_n and_o therefore_o be_v all_o impertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o h._n t._n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o they_o sect_n viii_o the_o objection_n against_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n be_v not_o solve_v by_o h._n t._n but_o h._n t._n take_v on_o he_o to_o answer_v objection_n thus_o ob._n miracle_n have_v cease_v ever_o since_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n answ_n you_o contradict_v the_o plain_a promise_n of_o christ_n make_v to_o his_o church_n without_o limitation_n as_o also_o the_o history_n and_o record_n of_o all_o christendom_n i_o reply_v 1._o the_o objection_n be_v not_o as_o h._n t._n frame_v it_o but_o that_o so_o frequent_a and_o manifest_a work_n of_o miracle_n as_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o which_o may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o doctrine_n without_o consonancy_n to_o the_o scripture_n have_v cease_v and_o therefore_o by_o this_o mark_n of_o itself_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n 2._o the_o contradictory_n to_o this_o be_v not_o prove_v by_o christ_n promise_n or_o the_o church_n record_n for_o 1._o the_o promise_n john_n 14._o 10._o mark_n 16._o 17._o be_v indefinite_a in_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o time_n and_o a_o indefinite_a proposition_n be_v true_a in_o a_o contingent_a matter_n if_o verify_v but_o of_o some_o at_o some_o time_n and_o therefore_o these_o promise_n may_v be_v true_a of_o some_o believer_n only_o and_o of_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n live_v and_o consequent_o by_o the_o promise_v it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n in_o the_o church_n in_o every_o age_n 2._o that_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n unto_o this_o day_n be_v manifest_a because_o they_o be_v not_o true_a of_o any_o age_n after_o that_o for_o however_o some_o miracle_n have_v be_v do_v yet_o not_o great_a than_o christ_n do_v which_o be_v promise_v john_n 14._o 10._o nor_o be_v the_o speak_n with_o new_a tongue_n which_o be_v promise_v mark_n 16._o 17._o in_o any_o age_n but_o that_o in_o which_o the_o apostle_n live_v 3._o these_o promise_n be_v as_o much_o make_v to_o believer_n in_o other_o church_n as_o the_o roman_a but_o now_o they_o grant_v there_o be_v no_o power_n of_o miracle_n in_o any_o other_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o understand_v the_o word_n with_o such_o a_o limitation_n as_o may_v make_v the_o proposition_n true_a though_o there_o be_v no_o power_n of_o miracle_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o there_o be_v no_o promise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o of_o any_o other_o point_n but_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o none_o of_o the_o miracle_n do_v by_o virtue_n of_o those_o promise_n prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n or_o doctrine_n but_o only_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o protestant_n who_o believe_v the_o creed_n as_o well_o as_o papist_n as_o for_o the_o record_n there_o be_v very_o few_o of_o they_o of_o any_o certainty_n after_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o popish_a writer_n themselves_o do_v confess_v that_o not_o only_o in_o their_o legend_n but_o also_o in_o their_o liturgy_n fabulous_a thing_n have_v creep_v so_o that_o by_o say_v miracle_n be_v altogether_o now_o cease_v or_o else_o be_v very_o rare_a and_o be_v unfit_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o verity_n of_o any_o present_a church_n be_v no_o contradict_v christ_n promise_n or_o any_o good_a record_n of_o christendom_n h._n t._n add_v object_n sign_n and_o miracle_n be_v give_v to_o unbeliever_n not_o to_o believer_n therefore_o they_o be_v now_o unnecessary_a answ_n no_o they_o be_v not_o for_o they_o very_o much_o confirm_v the_o immediate_a care_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n over_o his_o church_n they_o excellent_o demonstrate_v his_o omnipotence_n and_o there_o be_v many_o disbeliever_n still_o the_o more_o be_v the_o pity_n i_o reply_v that_o tongue_n be_v for_o a_o sign_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 14._o 22._o not_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o other_o miracle_n and_o therefore_o be_v this_o just_o urge_v by_o protestant_n that_o to_o believer_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n miracle_n be_v unnecessary_a now_o the_o answer_n of_o h._n t._n be_v quite_o from_o the_o point_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o other_o end_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o sign_n and_o miracle_n be_v necessary_a to_o confirm_v the_o immediate_a care_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n over_o his_o church_n since_o god_n do_v by_o his_o ordinary_a provision_n either_o of_o teacher_n or_o christian_a prince_n show_v his_o immediate_a care_n and_o providence_n over_o his_o church_n and_o by_o his_o daily_a work_n of_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o other_o act_n of_o govern_v the_o world_n demonstrate_v his_o omnipotence_n nor_o by_o his_o miracle_n and_o sign_n have_v he_o show_v so_o much_o his_o immediate_a care_n and_o providence_n over_o his_o church_n for_o the_o guide_n and_o protect_v of_o they_o as_o his_o care_n of_o unbeliever_n by_o bring_v they_o into_o his_o church_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v many_o disbeliever_n still_o the_o more_o be_v the_o pity_n and_o if_o god_n do_v see_v it_o good_a it_o will_v be_v a_o bless_a hang_v if_o he_o do_v vouchsafe_v the_o gift_n of_o do_v miracle_n to_o convert_v the_o indian_n moor_n tartar_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o wish_v it_o be_v true_a which_o the_o jesuit_n boast_v of_o francis_n xavier_n his_o miracle_n in_o the_o east_n indies_n though_o franciscus_n a_o victoria_fw-la relect_a 5._o sect._n 2._o and_o josephus_n acosta_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la indorum_fw-la salute_v cap._n 4._o 12_o blab_v out_o that_o which_o give_v we_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o the_o relation_n be_v but_o feign_v thing_n tend_v to_o magnify_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o jesuit_n there_o be_v no_o such_o evidence_n of_o those_o thing_n from_o any_o person_n of_o credit_n who_o have_v trade_v or_o travel_v into_o those_o part_n but_o be_v they_o what_o they_o will_v it_o be_v certain_a god_n never_o intend_v miracle_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o till_o both_o or_o either_o of_o they_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n if_o we_o be_v disbeliever_n we_o must_v be_v disbeliever_n still_o know_v this_o that_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v never_o so_o great_a miracle_n in_o show_n do_v by_o pope_n or_o friar_n yet_o we_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o without_o proof_n of_o their_o doctrine_n from_o scripture_n and_o that_o if_o any_o though_o a_o angel_n from_o
heaven_n preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o be_v write_v he_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v accurse_v gal._n 1._o 8_o 9_o and_o that_o miracle_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o prove_v our_o call_n while_o we_o preach_v the_o scripture-doctrine_n as_o bellarmine_n scrible_v lib._n 4._o the_o not_o be_v eccles_n cap._n 14._o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o papist_n do_v not_o stick_v only_o to_o scripture_n nor_o will_v be_v try_v by_o it_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v produce_v miracle_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o prelate_n to_o verify_v their_o claim_n or_o new_a gospel_n of_o which_o they_o be_v altogether_o desti●●te_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o allege_v but_o a_o company_n of_o fable_n concern_v some_o foolish_a friar_n such_o as_o francis_n dominick_n etc._n etc._n upon_o the_o report_n of_o silly_a superstitious_a woman_n and_o dote_a companion_n of_o they_o or_o some_o juggle_a trick_n in_o corner_n do_v by_o cheat_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n which_o serve_v for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o prove_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v knave_n and_o their_o popish_a proselyte_n that_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v fool_n and_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o press_v they_o as_o in_o the_o next_o objection_n why_o do_v not_o then_o your_o priest_n do_v miracle_n we_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v some_o of_o their_o do_v to_o which_o h._n t._n say_v answ_n because_o of_o your_o incredulity_n as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v she_o jew_n st._n matth._n 17._o 19_o yet_o they_o do_v many_o in_o god_n appoint_a time_n and_o place_n as_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n will_v testify_v though_o not_o to_o satisfy_v your_o sinful_a curiosity_n see_v francis_n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n in_o his_o paralipomena_fw-la who_o recount_v many_o great_a and_o evident_a miracle_n i_o reply_v if_o our_o incredulity_n be_v the_o only_a reason_n of_o their_o not_o do_v they_o among_o we_o yet_o i_o think_v they_o shall_v do_v they_o in_o italy_n and_o spain_n where_o man_n have_v ●aith_n in_o they_o but_o except_o of_o a_o few_o tale_n of_o philip_n nerius_n ignatius_n loyala_n francisca_n teresa_n isidore_n of_o madrid_n a_o husbandman_n and_o some_o other_o late_o canonize_a saint_n long_o after_o their_o death_n swear_v by_o some_o admirer_n of_o they_o or_o credulous_a receiver_n of_o report_n concern_v thing_n of_o they_o not_o open_o do_v and_o common_o know_v as_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v i_o hear_v of_o none_o the_o paralipomena_fw-la of_o franciscus_n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n or_o davenport_n who_o endeavour_v to_o reconcile_v the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v light_n with_o darkness_n a_o little_a afore_o these_o war_n i_o never_o see_v nor_o do_v i_o expect_v to_o find_v any_o thing_n from_o such_o a_o man_n but_o fraud_n and_o falsehood_n who_o have_v the_o face_n to_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v the_o article_n purposely_o frame_v against_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n to_o a_o sense_n consistent_a with_o it_o what_o justus_n lipsius_n write_v of_o the_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o idol_n at_o halles_n and_o zichem_n turselin_n of_o the_o chapel_n at_o lauretto_n and_o such_o like_a relation_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o heed_v the_o scripture_n will_v give_v any_o credit_n to_o they_o but_o take_v they_o either_o as_o fiction_n or_o illusion_n of_o satan_n to_o confirm_v man_n in_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o priest_n gain_n which_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n but_o the_o frequent_a imposture_n of_o papist_n in_o this_o kind_n as_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o abbey_n of_o hales_n that_o of_o boxley_n abbey_n and_o the_o holy_a maid_n of_o kent_n relate_v by_o speed_n in_o his_o chronicle_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o at_o orleans_n by_o grey_a friar_n relate_v by_o sleidan_n com._n lib._n 9_o at_o brussels_n relate_v by_o meteran_n lib._n 10._o hist_o belg._n that_o of_o the_o boy_n of_o bilson_n near_o wolverhampton_n in_o stafford-shire_n which_o be_v relate_v in_o a_o book_n of_o that_o thing_n and_o person_n yet_o alive_a can_v testify_v of_o the_o priest_n deceit_n in_o it_o with_o many_o more_o give_v just_a cause_n to_o discredit_v all_o such_o narration_n as_o mere_a juggle_a trick_n nor_o have_v the_o legend_n of_o saint_n which_o this_o man_n call_v the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n any_o better_a credit_n with_o the_o more_o ingenuous_a of_o their_o own_o church_n of_o who_o though_o some_o mince_v the_o matter_n call_v they_o pious_a fraud_n as_o if_o piety_n may_v be_v uphold_v by_o lie_n yet_o ludovicus_n vives_n free_o censure_v those_o that_o make_v they_o to_o have_v have_v a_o brazen_a forehead_n and_o those_o that_o believe_v they_o a_o leaden_a heart_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o more_o necessary_a for_o their_o priest_n to_o let_v we_o see_v their_o miracle_n not_o to_o satisfy_v our_o curiosity_n but_o our_o conscience_n if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o convert_v from_o disbelief_n in_o their_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n as_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v be_v term_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n verity_n or_o infallibility_n or_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o examine_v the_o seven_o article_n to_o which_o i_o now_o hasten_v which_o be_v entitle_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n assert_v artic_a vii_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v a_o innovation_n the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supremacy_n or_o headship_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v not_o prove_v by_o h._n t._n sect_n i._o neither_o be_v it_o prove_v nor_o probable_a that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o he_o be_v to_o have_v a_o successor_n our_o tenet_n say_v h._n t._n be_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n which_o have_v in_o part_n be_v prove_v already_o by_o our_o catalogue_n of_o chief_a pastor_n who_o be_v all_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o all_o age_n approve_v by_o they_o and_o own_v they_o for_o such_o and_o be_v yet_o far_o prove_v thus_o answ_n that_o peter_n be_v pope_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v say_v but_o never_o yet_o prove_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_n who_o may_v be_v as_o easy_o deceive_v in_o that_o as_o they_o be_v about_o christ_n age_n the_o keep_n of_o easter_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n those_o very_a man_n who_o relate_v peter_n sit_v at_o rome_n as_o bishop_n do_v not_o agree_v about_o his_o immediate_a successor_n whether_o linus_n or_o clemens_n or_o cletus_n as_o h._n t._n confess_v here_o pag._n 52._o and_o the_o relation_n itself_o be_v so_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o which_o paul_n say_v that_o by_o consent_n he_o and_o peter_n agree_v that_o peter_n shall_v go_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n commit_v to_o he_o his_o not_o salute_v peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n his_o be_v at_o antioch_n and_o according_a to_o luke_n and_o paul_n in_o other_o place_n so_o long_a a_o time_n as_o they_o mention_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n make_v it_o altogether_o improbable_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v bishop_n at_o rome_n such_o a_o time_n as_o they_o say_v he_o be_v and_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o nero_n time_n as_o the_o tradition_n insist_v on_o bear_n in_o hand_n nor_o be_v it_o agreeable_a to_o peter_n office_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v as_o a_o fix_a pastor_n in_o one_o place_n and_o if_o he_o be_v settle_v in_o any_o place_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a it_o be_v at_o antioch_n where_o paul_n mention_n he_o to_o have_v be_v than_o at_o rome_n nor_o of_o his_o translation_n of_o his_o seat_n from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n be_v there_o any_o proof_n but_o what_o be_v by_o such_o tradition_n as_o in_o this_o and_o other_o thing_n appear_v to_o be_v very_o uncertain_a and_o unlikely_a yet_o be_v it_o yield_v that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n or_o chief_a pastor_n how_o will_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v to_o have_v a_o successor_n paul_n it_o be_v certain_a be_v at_o rome_n and_o do_v while_o he_o be_v there_o undoubted_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n yet_o pope_n do_v not_o challenge_v themselves_o to_o be_v paul_n but_o peter_n successor_n however_o they_o put_v paul_n sword_n in_o their_o arm_n with_o peter_n key_n and_o in_o their_o write_n say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v found_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o use_v paul_n name_n with_o peter_n in_o their_o sentence_n
of_o his_o own_o sheep_n but_o a_o shepherd_n be_v not_o lord_n or_o head_n of_o another_o sheep_n of_o which_o he_o be_v no_o owner_n and_o therefore_o though_o he_o be_v to_o rule_v and_o feed_v they_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o to_o rule_v they_o after_o his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o owner_n nor_o be_v he_o to_o take_v the_o profit_n of_o the_o sheep_n but_o the_o owner_n be_v to_o have_v it_o the_o shepherd_n be_v not_o to_o look_v but_o for_o his_o pay_n and_o encouragement_n according_a to_o the_o will_n or_o contract_n of_o the_o owner_n now_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n be_v none_o of_o peter_n sheep_n nor_o be_v all_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n universal_o take_v to_o be_v feed_v by_o peter_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v feed_v that_o be_v rule_v himself_o who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o flock_n and_o so_o excommunicate_v himself_o absolve_v himself_o and_o since_o the_o pope_n have_v peter_n power_n if_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n by_o this_o doctrine_n he_o be_v to_o rule_v that_o be_v to_o excommunicate_v absolve_v and_o deprive_v himself_o and_o for_o the_o other_o metaphor_n of_o a_o foundation_n it_o have_v the_o like_a absurdity_n for_o if_o peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o term_n foundation_n import_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n peter_n who_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o himself_o and_o the_o pope_n of_o himself_o and_o since_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o christ_n to_o himself_o and_o so_o have_v pre-eminence_n over_o himself_o and_o the_o pope_n in_o like_a manner_n yea_o unless_o they_o deny_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o christ_n sheep_n they_o must_v assert_v peter_n and_o after_o he_o the_o pope_n to_o have_v be_v the_o foundation_n and_o shepherd_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n to_o have_v have_v a_o power_n to_o rule_v excommunicate_a and_o absolve_v she_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o the_o press_v of_o a_o metaphor_n beyond_o that_o for_o what_o it_o be_v use_v draw_v with_o it_o many_o absurdity_n and_o therefore_o the_o metaphor_n of_o foundation_n and_o building_n shepherd_n and_o sheep_n can_v infer_v no_o more_o than_o that_o use_n of_o these_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o speech_n intend_v by_o they_o which_o what_o it_o be_v will_v be_v consider_v by_o examine_v the_o text_n bring_v for_o proof_n and_o for_o the_o argument_n if_o they_o do_v conclude_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n they_o shall_v be_v thus_o frame_v or_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o that_o be_v the_o foundation_n or_o builder_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v supreme_a unerring_a dominion_n or_o rule_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o be_v peter_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n ergo._fw-la again_o he_o that_o be_v to_o feed_v all_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n have_v dominion_n or_o rule_n as_o aforesaid_a but_o that_o be_v peter_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o do_v ergo._fw-la in_o both_o i_o shall_v deny_v the_o major_n understand_v of_o the_o under_o foundation_n builder_n and_o shepherd_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v yield_v by_o concession_n of_o a_o impossibility_n yet_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v such_o a_o supreme_a unerring_a rule_n thereby_o and_o i_o deny_v the_o minor_a also_o and_o in_o both_o as_o they_o stand_v or_o shall_v stand_v there_o be_v many_o proposition_n in_o these_o and_o his_o form_n express_v or_o imply_v which_o be_v apparent_o false_a as_o 1._o that_o every_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v pre-eminence_n of_o firmitude_n above_o every_o building_n found_v on_o it_o there_o be_v some_o as_o firm_a in_o the_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n some_o as_o firm_a or_o more_o firm_a than_o peter_n 2._o that_o every_o foundation_n or_o builder_n of_o the_o church_n have_v rule_v over_o it_o 3._o that_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o foundation_n or_o builder_n do_v note_n rule_n or_o dominion_n 4._o that_o as_o apply_v to_o peter_n they_o note_v in_o he_o supreme_a unerring_a rule_n or_o dominion_n 5._o that_o he_o that_o be_v a_o shepherd_n be_v head_n of_o his_o flock_n 6._o that_o he_o be_v above_o his_o flock_n 7._o that_o the_o person_n that_o be_v bid_v to_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n be_v bid_v to_o feed_v the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n universal_o take_v 8._o that_o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v they_o be_v as_o much_o as_o have_v supreme_a dominion_n be_v a_o visible_a monarch_n over_o they_o 9_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v peter_n successor_n in_o that_o charge_n and_o power_n which_o christ_n commit_v to_o he_o over_o his_o whole_a church_n 10._o that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o peter_n in_o this_o point_n be_v true_a of_o every_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v he_o never_o so_o unlearned_a and_o vicious_a all_o which_o i_o have_v distinct_o note_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v upon_o how_o many_o supposition_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n hang_v and_o yet_o how_o loose_a and_o empty_a of_o proof_n from_o scripture_n or_o reason_n the_o dispute_n of_o papist_n be_v about_o this_o which_o be_v with_o they_o a_o fundamental_a point_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o so_o much_o that_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o heavy_a curse_n that_o be_v befall_v papist_n that_o since_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n that_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v 2_o thess_n 2._o 10_o 11_o 12._o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o understand_a person_n among_o they_o shall_v ever_o assent_v to_o the_o claim_v supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o these_o reason_n but_o let_v we_o view_v what_o be_v say_v here_o the_o major_n be_v prove_v because_o the_o foundation_n support_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o building_n we_o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a cornerstone_n ephes_n 2._o 20._o and_o the_o shepherd_n have_v a_o power_n to_o govern_v his_o whole_a flock_n answ_n the_o argument_n frame_v hence_o must_v be_v this_o that_o which_o support_v the_o building_n have_v a_o pre-eminence_n of_o firmitude_n and_o stability_n before_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o building_n which_o be_v found_v on_o it_o but_o so_o do_v every_o foundation_n ergo._fw-la but_o the_o major_n be_v not_o true_a of_o personal_a metaphorical_a foundation_n of_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v not_o of_o material_a proper_a foundation_n a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o foundation_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o support_v it_o by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o example_n and_o authority_n and_o yet_o not_o have_v a_o pre-eminence_n of_o firmitude_n and_o stability_n above_o that_o commonwealth_n found_v on_o he_o or_o it_o and_o so_o in_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o church_n a_o man_n that_o find_v it_o may_v fall_v away_o and_o yet_o the_o church_n stand_v firm_a neither_o be_v the_o minor_a true_a of_o every_o personal_a metaphorical_a foundation_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o foundation_n that_o be_v begin_v a_o church_n or_o common-weath_a who_o do_v not_o after_o support_v it_o the_o text_n ephes_n 2._o 20._o prove_v neither_o of_o the_o proposition_n nor_o do_v i_o know_v to_o what_o purpose_n it_o be_v produce_v except_o to_o prove_v peter_n to_o have_v be_v a_o foundation_n but_o than_o it_o prove_v not_o peter_n alone_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n to_o have_v be_v foundation_n and_o so_o prove_v no_o pre-eminence_n to_o peter_n above_o they_o which_o be_v the_o assertion_n of_o this_o author_n but_o to_o i_o it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o the_o apostle_n be_v term_v foundation_n 1._o because_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v appropriate_v to_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o 2._o because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v you_o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n but_o the_o foundation_n and_o therefore_o seem_v to_o have_v this_o sense_n you_o be_v build_v on_o that_o foundation_n which_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n have_v lay_v not_o which_o they_o be_v and_o so_o the_o genitives_n be_v of_o the_o efficient_a not_o of_o the_o subject_n and_o the_o foundation_n must_v be_v that_o doctrine_n or_o truth_n they_o declare_v of_o which_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a cornerstone_n nor_o be_v this_o against_o that_o which_o be_v revel_v 21._o 14._o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v write_v in_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n for_o that_o may_v be_v say_v because_o they_o be_v chief_a workman_n in_o the_o lay_n of_o the_o foundation_n as_o paul_n say_v of_o himself_o 1_o cor._n 3._o
right_o belong_v to_o he_o 2._o that_o such_o primacy_n prove_v not_o any_o superiority_n of_o power_n above_o the_o apostle_n no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o senior_a fellow_n of_o a_o college_n be_v superior_a in_o power_n above_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o be_v first_o write_v in_o the_o college_n book_n or_o the_o foreman_n in_o a_o ●ury_n be_v superior_a because_o he_o be_v first_o call_v sect_n vi_o the_o late_a pope_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o successor_n of_o peter_n h._n t._n add_v what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o prove_v st._n peter_n primacy_n prove_v also_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o successor_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n answ_n the_o proof_n of_o a_o primacy_n be_v short_a of_o the_o proof_n a_o supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n h._n t._n undertake_v there_o be_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o primacy_n of_o order_n afore_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n and_o constantinople_n that_o be_v to_o sit_v in_o a_o general_a council_n high_a and_o to_o have_v some_o other_o privilege_n yet_o do_v never_o acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n their_o supreme_a head_n but_o resist_v this_o claim_n when_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v usurp_v that_o primacy_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v give_v he_o chief_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n and_o power_n of_o the_o city_n peter_n name_n be_v after_o by_o ambitious_a pope_n use_v to_o serve_v their_o design_n in_o lift_v up_o the_o roman_a bishop_n but_o the_o ancient_n do_v look_v to_o the_o eminence_n of_o the_o city_n as_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o their_o prefer_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n from_o whence_o when_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v translate_v to_o constantinople_n the_o bishop_n of_o it_o be_v make_v a_o patriarch_n equal_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o for_o a_o time_n contend_v for_o pre-eminence_n above_o he_o it_o be_v not_o at_o first_o by_o reason_n of_o peter_n imagine_a headship_n or_o any_o succession_n to_o he_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v prefer_v before_o other_o patriarch_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o amplitude_n and_o eminency_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o second_o constantinopolitan_n and_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o of_o chalcedon_n council_n show_v as_o for_o succession_n to_o peter_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v have_v successor_n as_o apostle_n since_o they_o be_v only_o to_o be_v apostle_n who_o be_v witness_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n which_o neither_o the_o roman_a bishop_n nor_o any_o after_o the_o age_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n live_v can_v be_v that_o they_o be_v either_o fix_a bishop_n of_o certain_a place_n or_o do_v appoint_v any_o to_o succeed_v in_o their_o apostleship_n be_v false_a all_o apostle_n be_v by_o special_a election_n of_o christ_n those_o that_o come_v after_o be_v by_o election_n of_o man_n and_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o not_o in_o apostleship_n nor_o do_v the_o apostle_n make_v bishop_n of_o certain_a place_n their_o successor_n but_o every_o pastor_n who_o preach_v the_o faith_n aright_o be_v their_o successor_n and_o so_o be_v all_o gospel_n preacher_n at_o this_o day_n john_n calvin_n at_o geneva_n do_v succeed_v peter_n more_o true_o than_o pope_n aldobrandin_n or_o barberin_n or_o ghisi_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o pope_n for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n till_o the_o pope_n prove_v themselves_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o peter_n be_v they_o vain_o talk_v of_o succession_n to_o he_o as_o of_o late_o they_o have_v be_v they_o have_v be_v successor_n to_o simon_n magus_n rather_o than_o to_o simon_n peter_n sect_n vii_o the_o say_n of_o father_n and_o council_n prove_v not_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o father_n which_o h._n t._n cite_v for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o first_o be_v out_o of_o damascen_n a_o late_a corrupt_a writer_n and_o he_o cite_v it_o out_o of_o pseudo_fw-la dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n tale_n prove_v to_o be_v such_o by_o dr._n john_n rainold_n conf._n with_o hart_n chap._n 8._o divis_fw-la 2._o and_o from_o that_o place_n in_o which_o the_o contrary_a to_o what_o it_o be_v allege_v for_o to_o wit_n peter_n supremacy_n may_v be_v evince_v in_o that_o the_o author_n who_o ever_o he_o be_v make_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v to_o be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n there_o say_v h._n t._n peter_n be_v style_v the_o supreme_a and_o most_o ancient_a top_n of_o divine_n which_o though_o it_o have_v no_o credit_n there_o be_v too_o much_o know_v of_o the_o forgery_n and_o dream_n in_o the_o write_n of_o damascen_n and_o that_o counterfeit_v dionysius_n yet_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o dionysius_n the_o arcopagite_n shall_v have_v so_o write_v as_o he_o say_v he_o do_v term_v peter_n the_o supreme_a and_o most_o ancient_a top_n of_o divine_n this_o will_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v the_o universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n with_o such_o a_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n as_o this_o author_n assert_n he_o have_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n even_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o for_o this_o do_v not_o express_a supremacy_n of_o power_n but_o of_o knowledge_n and_o assert_n his_o eminency_n for_o understanding_n theology_n to_o which_o i_o think_v h._n t._n shall_v not_o annex_v the_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n lest_o that_o some_o such_o as_o aquinas_n andradius_fw-la or_o some_o other_o challenge_v the_o popedom_n which_o be_v seldom_o confer_v on_o any_o for_o his_o eminence_n in_o divinity_n but_o rather_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n be_v think_v unfit_a for_o the_o papacy_n even_o cicarella_n relate_v in_o the_o life_n of_o sixtus_n the_o five_o that_o cardinal_n sirlet_n though_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n be_v reject_v as_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v choose_v pope_n such_o as_o bellarmine_n tolet_n baronius_n be_v not_o choose_v to_o be_v pope_n but_o such_o crafty_a man_n as_o paul_n the_o three_o or_o such_o stout_a spirit_n as_o paul_n the_o four_o or_o such_o as_o be_v great_a canonist_n and_o politician_n that_o know_v the_o art_n of_o the_o papacy_n better_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v choose_v for_o pope_n yea_o man_n so_o ignorant_a in_o divinity_n and_o so_o unfit_a to_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o soul_n have_v be_v choose_v for_o pope_n that_o of_o all_o the_o pope_n for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n pass_v there_o be_v but_o a_o very_a few_o who_o have_v knowledge_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o any_o measure_n of_o godliness_n competent_a for_o a_o parish_n priest_n yea_o bellarmine_n lib._n de_fw-la notis_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 9_o be_v feign_v to_o assert_v that_o there_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v no_o part_n of_o it_o as_o a_o live_a body_n but_o only_o as_o instrument_n lest_o otherwise_o the_o pope_n be_v prove_v evil_a shall_v be_v uncapable_a of_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o he_o be_v no_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n thereby_o make_v a_o dead_a equivocal_a member_n a_o univocal_a head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v conscious_a that_o without_o that_o shift_n the_o pope_n will_v all_z or_o most_o of_o they_o be_v cashier_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o not_o so_o much_o as_o part_n of_o christ_n body_n much_o less_o head_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o notorious_a pride_n luxury_n cruelty_n perfidiousness_n covetousness_n blasphemy_n deceit_n and_o whatsoever_o vice_n may_v show_v they_o to_o be_v child_n of_o the_o devil_n nor_o do_v the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la cap._n 3._o in_o the_o second_o age_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v all_o church_n round_o about_o aught_o to_o resort_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o ancient_a found_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n for_o whether_o the_o word_n convenire_fw-la be_v to_o be_v translate_v resort_n or_o agree_v to_o or_o go_v together_o with_o which_o be_v somewhat_o uncertain_a it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o church_n round_o about_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o have_v be_v a_o impossible_a thing_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o same_o place_n who_o direct_v they_o that_o be_v in_o asia_n to_o ephesus_n and_o smyrna_n for_o the_o same_o end_n but_o he_o mean_v of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n such_o as_o lion_n be_v in_o france_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n and_o such_o part_n as_o be_v near_a room_n and_o it_o
all_o the_o world_n oppugn_v if_o optatus_n call_v peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v mean_v as_o be_v frequent_a in_o scripture_n and_o other_o writer_n to_o call_v the_o forward_a and_o leader_n or_o first_o in_o order_n the_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o word_n apostolorum_fw-la caput_fw-la petrus_n inde_fw-la cephas_n appellatus_fw-la give_v occasion_n to_o conceive_v these_o word_n insert_v in_o optatus_n who_o it_o be_v likely_a will_v not_o have_v give_v so_o inept_v a_o derivation_n of_o the_o word_n cephas_n as_o if_o it_o be_v from_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o head_n the_o word_n in_o augustin_n serm._n 124._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la not_o as_o h._n t._n 12._o de_fw-la 4._o temporibus_fw-la which_o show_v that_o he_o cite_v this_o passage_n without_o read_v it_o and_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o do_v so_o in_o the_o rest_n have_v no_o likelihood_n to_o be_v augustine_n those_o sermon_n be_v nothing_o like_o augustine_n write_n nor_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o augustine_n will_v have_v call_v peter_n the_o foundation_n of_o unmovable_a faith_n or_o have_v make_v the_o sin_n of_o deny_v christ_n exiguae_fw-la culpae_fw-la a_o small_a fault_n the_o word_n in_o the_o eighty_o six_o epistle_n ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la be_v either_o deceitful_o or_o ignorant_o allege_v they_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o augustine_n but_o of_o urbicus_n who_o he_o refute_v for_o so_o the_o word_n be_v peter_z also_o say_v he_o that_o be_v urbicus_n the_o head_n of_o apostle_n the_o doorkeeper_n of_o heaven_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n simon_n be_v extinct_a who_o have_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o devil_n not_o to_o be_v overcome_v but_o by_o fast_v teach_v the_o roman_n that_o thing_n who_o faith_n be_v declare_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o land_n the_o word_n of_o augustine_n of_o who_o peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n bear_v the_o person_n etc._n etc._n tract_n ultimo_fw-la in_o joannem_fw-la be_v recite_v at_o large_a be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v the_o supremacy_n which_o romanist_n ascribe_v to_o he_o that_o they_o be_v against_o the_o principal_a ground_n by_o which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v it_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v recite_v they_o at_o large_a this_o follow_v christ_n the_o church_n do_v bless_v by_o hope_n in_o this_o sorrowful_a life_n of_o which_o church_n peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n bear_v the_o person_n by_o a_o figure_a generality_n for_o so_o much_o as_o pertain_v to_o he_o proper_o he_o be_v one_o man_n by_o nature_n by_o grace_n one_o christian_n by_o more_o abundant_a grace_n one_o and_o the_o same_o first_o apostle_n but_o when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o he_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n he_o signify_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o in_o this_o world_n be_v shake_v with_o divers_a temptation_n as_o it_o be_v shower_n flood_n and_o tempest_n and_o fall_v not_o because_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o rock_n from_o whence_o peter_n also_o take_v his_o name_n for_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o call_v from_o peter_n but_o peter_n from_o the_o rock_n petrus_n a_o petra_n as_o christ_n be_v not_o call_v from_o a_o christian_a but_o a_o christian_a from_o christ_n for_o therefore_o say_v the_o lord_n upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n because_o peter_n have_v say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n therefore_o he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o foundation_n peter_n himself_o also_o be_v build_v for_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v other_o foundation_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n the_o church_n therefore_o which_o be_v found_v on_o christ_n receive_v from_o he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o peter_n that_o be_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v sin_n for_o what_o the_o church_n be_v by_o propriety_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v by_o signification_n peter_n in_o the_o rock_n by_o which_o signification_n christ_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n peter_n the_o church_n in_o which_o passage_n though_o there_o be_v conceit_n not_o right_a yet_o clear_v it_o be_v that_o peter_n primacy_n be_v here_o assert_v to_o be_v only_o in_o this_o that_o he_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o the_o rock_n on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v be_v christ_n that_o he_o have_v his_o first_o apostleship_n by_o more_o abundant_a grace_n in_o that_o he_o be_v make_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o signify_v its_o unity_n that_o in_o he_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v sin_n which_o point_v i_o presume_v the_o romanist_n now_o will_v not_o avow_v that_o which_o he_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a can._n 39_o arab._n be_v but_o a_o late_o devise_v thing_n those_o arabic_a canon_n be_v forge_v there_o have_v be_v but_o twenty_o in_o all_o in_o that_o council_n in_o the_o five_o of_o which_o number_n the_o pope_n be_v equal_v with_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n act._n 16._o be_v false_o allege_v as_o if_o it_o ascribe_v all_o primacy_n and_o chief_a honour_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n since_o it_o make_v the_o pope_n and_o other_o patriarch_n equal_a in_o jurisdiction_n within_o their_o circuit_n or_o province_n notwithstanding_o the_o reluctancy_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o flattery_n of_o some_o there_o and_o that_o pre-eminence_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v of_o order_n or_o place_n not_o of_o power_n nor_o that_o by_o divine_a institution_n for_o peter_n sake_n but_o by_o humane_a allowance_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n sect_n viii_o the_o holy_a scripture_n john_n 19_o 11._o act_n 25._o 10_o 11._o luke_n 22._o 25._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o overthrow_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n h._n t._n add_v after_o his_o fashion_n objection_n solve_v object_n pilate_n have_v power_n over_o christ_n himself_o thou_o shall_v not_o say_v he_o have_v any_o power_n against_o i_o unless_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o john_n 19_o 11._o therefore_o temporal_a prince_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v strengthen_v by_o christ_n disclaim_v a_o worldly_a kingdom_n john_n 18._o 36._o saying_n who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n over_o you_o luke_n 12._o 14._o decline_v the_o be_v make_v a_o king_n john_n 6._o 15._o answ_n i_o distinguish_v your_o antecedent_n he_o have_v a_o power_n of_o permission_n over_o christ_n i_o grant_v a_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n i_o deny_v and_o so_o do_v all_o good_a christian_n nor_o be_v your_o consequence_n less_o to_o be_v deny_v speak_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o thing_n belong_v to_o church-government_n in_o which_o we_o only_o defend_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o that_o without_o all_o prejudice_n to_o prince_n and_o chief_a magistrate_n in_o their_o supremacy_n of_o temporal_a affair_n i_o reply_v this_o objection_n be_v most_o direct_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o temporal_a thing_n which_o this_o author_n after_o hart_n and_o sundry_a other_o seem_v not_o to_o allow_v the_o pope_n though_o carerius_fw-la baronius_n bellarmine_n and_o other_o defend_v it_o place_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o three_o of_o lu._n 22._o 25._o upon_o another_o occasion_n the_o strife_n of_o the_o disciple_n at_o christ_n last_o supper_n who_o of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v the_o great_a our_o lord_n christ_n do_v express_o determine_v the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v have_v dominion_n over_o they_o and_o they_o that_o rule_n over_o they_o be_v call_v benefactor_n but_o you_o not_o so_o and_o in_o all_o these_o place_n in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o the_o papist_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v it_o be_v dominantur_fw-la corum_fw-la or_o eye_n &_o potestatem_fw-la exercent_fw-la in_o eos_fw-la or_o potestatem_fw-la habent_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la or_o super_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o none_o of_o the_o place_n do_v that_o translation_n express_v the_o word_n as_o import_v tyrannical_a rule_n according_a to_o their_o own_o will_n without_o respect_n to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o person_n rule_v and_o the_o translate_n of_o it_o by_o h._n t._n over-rule_v and_o nothing_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o import_v a_o forbid_v only_o to_o lord_n it_o over_o inferior_n be_v not_o right_a
appear_v from_o his_o word_n lib._n 4._o epist_n 38._o when_o he_o say_v to_o john_n thou_o desire_v to_o tread_v under_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n in_o comparison_n of_o thyself_o which_o show_v that_o he_o charge_v he_o not_o to_o have_v affect_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n as_o if_o he_o will_v be_v the_o only_a bishop_n absolute_o but_o comparative_o to_o himself_o in_o that_o sense_n as_o he_o which_o be_v singular_a in_o some_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v alone_o and_o as_o he_o who_o be_v not_o what_o he_o be_v be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v and_o so_o gregory_n charge_v he_o as_o if_o by_o consequence_n he_o will_v exclude_v all_o other_o and_o unbishop_n they_o in_o comparison_n and_o yet_o if_o gregorie_n word_n be_v understand_v to_o condemn_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o any_o shall_v arrogate_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n as_o if_o he_o be_v the_o only_a bishop_n and_o other_o but_o as_o his_o vicar_n or_o substitute_n all_o that_o gregory_n impute_v to_o the_o use_n of_o that_o title_n in_o this_o sense_n fall_v on_o the_o late_a roman_a bishop_n who_o deny_v that_o any_o bishop_n have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o from_o they_o that_o bishop_n be_v not_o immediate_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o mediate_o from_o the_o pope_n concern_v which_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o friar_n paul_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o book_n in_o which_o may_v be_v see_v how_o stiff_o the_o italian_n and_o jesuit_n hold_v it_o and_o the_o pope_n elude_v the_o spanish_a bishop_n last_o that_o gregory_n do_v disclain_v such_o a_o supremacy_n as_o pope_n now_o usurp_v be_v manifest_a from_o the_o obedience_n which_o gregory_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 32_o lib._n 2._o epist_n 61._o 31._o lib._n 7._o epist_n 1._o and_o elsewhere_o acknowledge_v he_o do_v owe_v to_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n as_o his_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o in_o that_o epistle_n in_o which_o he_o write_v to_o mauritius_n about_o john_n usurpation_n by_o sabinian_a pope_n next_o after_o he_o petition_n that_o the_o most_o pious_a lord_n mauritius_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o judge_v that_o very_a business_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o john_n of_o constantinople_n and_o himself_o about_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o he_o deny_v to_o jo●n_n or_o to_o himself_o nor_o be_v gregorie_n own_o election_n to_o the_o popedom_n count_v valid_a without_o the_o confirmation_n of_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n as_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o his_o life_n in_o platina_n appear_v which_o thing_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o that_o doctrine_n which_o the_o papist_n now_o hold_v about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n h._n t._n add_v object_n the_o first_o constantinopolitan_a council_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n decree_v the_o constantinopolitan_a see_v to_o be_v equal_a with_o that_o of_o rome_n answ_n in_o certain_a privilege_n i_o grant_v in_o original_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n i_o deny_v and_o so_o do_v the_o say_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v we_o thorough_o consider_v true_o t●at_v all_o primacy_n and_o chief_a honour_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v for_o the_o archbishop_n of_o old_a rome_n action_n 16._o nor_o be_v that_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ever_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n though_o it_o own_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o seek_v but_o primacy_n in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o after_o it_o i_o reply_v 1._o though_o it_o have_v be_v gainsay_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n the_o opposition_n of_o one_o bishop_n shall_v weigh_v down_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o rest_n 2._o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o pope_n approbation_n be_v not_o then_o judge_v necessary_a but_o that_o the_o synod_n can_v determine_v without_o he_o 3._o that_o canon_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v not_o gainsay_v by_o the_o pope_n that_o then_o be_v nor_o many_o year_n after_o 4._o gregory_n the_o great_a esteem_v the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n as_o the_o four_o gospel_n without_o exempt_n that_o canon_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o council_n give_v prerogative_n of_o honour_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n next_o after_o the_o roman_a because_o it_o be_v new_a rome_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n express_o determine_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o roman_a which_o privilege_n be_v the_o same_o that_o old_a rome_n have_v which_o can_v not_o be_v the_o first_o place_n in_o the_o council_n but_o be_v power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o this_o they_o determine_v notwithstanding_o the_o regret_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n who_o can_v not_o obtain_v any_o more_o than_o what_o be_v allot_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n of_o which_o h._n t._n say_v object_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v let_v the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v keep_v in_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o all_o these_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o have_v such_o a_o custom_n answ_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o custom_n to_o permit_v such_o a_o power_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o greek_a text_n say_v because_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o this_o be_v accustom_v which_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v above_o the_o other_o i_o reply_v this_o answer_n be_v frivolous_a or_o rather_o impudent_a for_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v allow_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n which_o be_v accustom_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o be_v not_o a_o power_n to_o permit_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n but_o to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n therein_o as_o their_o metropolitan_a namely_o to_o look_v to_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n and_o compose_v of_o difference_n and_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o each_o of_o those_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n shall_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o look_v to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n each_o in_o his_o province_n as_o ruffinus_n express_v the_o canon_n and_o the_o arrbick_n and_o other_o interpreter_n and_o paschasinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n allege_v it_o thus_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexendria_n shall_v have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d power_n over_o all_o because_o so_o it_o be_v accustom_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o all_o simple_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v thus_o mean_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v to_o have_v power_n of_o all_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v power_n of_o all_o and_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v be_v supreme_a bishop_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o in_o stead_n of_o one_o visible_a supreme_a head_n there_o shall_v be_v more_o which_o romanist_n brook_v not_o but_o it_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o equal_a power_n and_o charge_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o province_n with_o that_o which_o by_o custom_n the_o roman_a have_v in_o he_o and_o for_o the_o inference_n from_o the_o word_n because_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o this_o be_v accustom_v that_o it_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v above_o the_o other_o it_o be_v vain_a it_o prove_v only_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n power_n to_o have_v be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n his_o power_n but_o not_o great_a yea_o it_o prove_v a_o equality_n between_o they_o since_o it_o ascribe_v the_o same_o to_o the_o one_o which_o be_v accustom_v to_o the_o other_o sect_n x._o of_o the_o emperor_n call_v council_n pope_n joan_n papist_n kill_v prince_n excommunicate_a not_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n h._n t._n proceed_v obj._n the_o emperor_n heretofore_o call_v and_o preside_v in_o general_a council_n answ_n they_o call_v they_o instrumental_o i_o grant_v by_o way_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n i_o deny_v and_o they_o preside_v also_o in_o they_o for_o peace_n and_o ornament_n true_a for_o definition_n or_o judgement_n it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o always_o be_v reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n i_o will_v not_o sit_v among_o they_o as_o emperor_n say_v constantine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n about_o the_o six_o general_n council_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v imperious_o with_o they_o but_o 〈◊〉_d one_o of_o they_o and_o what_o the_o father_n shall_v ordain_v i_o will_v execute_v emperor_n subscribe_v council_n 〈…〉_z constitution_n but_o execution_n god_n say_v constantine_n to_o the_o nicene_n council_n have_v make_v you_o priest_n and_o give_v you_o
apostle_n warn_v they_o gal._n 1._o 8_o 9_o neither_o therefore_o the_o warning_n give_v they_o nor_o any_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o life_n yield_v sufficient_a security_n of_o not_o be_v deceive_v nor_o deceive_v other_o the_o church_n and_o teacher_n thereof_o may_v not_o only_o be_v man_n and_o have_v reason_n but_o also_o good_a man_n and_o conscionable_a and_o warn_v not_o to_o deliver_v any_o thing_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o yet_o may_v build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n and_o be_v save_v as_o through_o fire_n though_o their_o building_n suffer_v loss_n keep_v the_o foundation_n and_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o error_n though_o some_o be_v secret_a and_o unknown_a to_o they_o let_v we_o see_v what_o be_v in_o the_o next_o argument_n which_o he_o term_v the_o last_o argument_n for_o tradition_n sect_n iv._o counterfeit_v might_n and_o do_v come_v into_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n without_o such_o a_o force_n as_o h._n t._n imagine_v necessary_a thereto_o even_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o make_v say_v h._n t._n a_o whole_a world_n of_o wise_a and_o disintere_v man_n break_v so_o far_o with_o their_o own_o nature_n as_o to_o conspire_v in_o a_o notorio●n_n lie_v to_o damn_v themselves_o and_o their_o posterity_n which_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o make_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n fallible_a such_o a_o force_n of_o hope_n or_o fear_n must_v fall_v upon_o they_o all_o at_o once_o as_o may_v be_v strong_a than_o nature_n in_o they_o but_o such_o a_o force_n of_o hope_n or_o fear_n can_v never_o fall_v on_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o church_n at_o once_o which_o be_v disperse_v over_o all_o nation_n therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o church_n at_o once_o to_o conspire_v in_o such_o a_o lie_n or_o consequent_o to_o err_v in_o faith_n answ_n this_o argument_n conclude_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o be_v the_o five_o article_n not_o for_o tradition_n as_o be_v pretend_v in_o this_o article_n but_o that_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o all_o their_o teacher_n set_v aside_o the_o apostle_n be_v fallible_a be_v prove_v before_o and_o how_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o late_a age_n may_v be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o also_o deceive_v and_o deceive_v other_o without_o break_v with_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o far_o as_o to_o conspire_v in_o a_o notorious_a lie_n to_o damn_v themselves_o and_o their_o posterity_n and_o without_o such_o a_o force_n of_o fear_n or_o hope_n fall_v upon_o they_o all_o at_o once_o as_o may_v be_v strong_a than_o nature_n to_o they_o have_v be_v show_v before_o both_o by_o reason_n and_o experience_n and_o our_o lord_n christ_n have_v tell_v we_o it_o will_v be_v that_o while_o man_n sleep_v the_o enemy_n will_v come_v and_o sow_v tare_n matth._n 13._o 25._o and_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 19_o that_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n by_o god_n permission_n that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a judas_n 4._o there_o be_v certain_a man_n creep_v in_o unaware_o ordain_v of_o old_a to_o this_o condemnation_n 2_o pet._n 2._o 1._o 1_o john_n 4._o 1._o and_o according_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o eusebius_n note_v out_o of_o egesippus_fw-la lib._n 3._o hist_o cap._n 29._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n remain_v a_o pure_a and_o uncorrupt_a virgin_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o after_o their_o decease_n and_o those_o that_o hear_v they_o there_o be_v a_o conspiracy_n of_o corrupter_n which_o do_v lurk_v before_o that_o bold_o vent_v knowledge_n false_o so_o call_v much_o of_o which_o be_v publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n irenaeus_n lib._n 2._o advers._fw-la haeret_fw-la cap._n 39_o say_v in_o his_o day_n it_o be_v report_v as_o from_o john_n that_o christ_n live_v to_o the_o fifty_o year_n of_o his_o age_n by_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o asia_n which_o meet_v with_o john_n the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o john_n deliver_v it_o to_o they_o nor_o be_v this_o to_o imagine_v man_n to_o break_v with_o their_o nature_n but_o to_o follow_v their_o nature_n which_o be_v in_o all_o corrupt_a in_o the_o best_a imperfect_a as_o for_o what_o h._n t._n tell_v we_o of_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o wise_a and_o disintere_v man_n it_o be_v a_o utopia_n in_o a_o country_n call_v no_o where_o but_o in_o h._n t._n his_o brain_n sure_o the_o wise_a and_o disintere_v man_n of_o father_n and_o other_o preacher_n have_v still_o stand_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v disow_v unwritten_a tradition_n as_o not_o be_v a_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n pope_n and_o popish_a council_n who_o have_v be_v the_o stickler_n for_o tradition_n unwritten_a as_o they_o have_v be_v none_o of_o the_o wise_a with_o any_o holy_a wisdom_n but_o serpentine_a craft_n so_o have_v they_o bend_v all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o uphold_v tradition_n for_o their_o interest_n of_o greatness_n and_o gain_n be_v necessitate_v to_o 〈◊〉_d unwritten_a tradition_n because_o their_o doctrine_n can_v be_v maintain_v out_o of_o scripture_n he_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n write_v by_o friar_n paul_n of_o venice_n in_o which_o council_n tradition_n unwritten_a be_v first_o equal_v to_o scripture_n may_v perceive_v that_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o pack_n of_o deceiver_n and_o deceive_v man_n it_o be_v at_o trent_n the_o bishop_n general_o be_v unlearned_a in_o the_o scripture_n many_o of_o they_o mere_a canonist_n and_o such_o as_o understand_v not_o the_o dispute_n in_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o divine_v a_o company_n of_o wrangle_a sophister_n enure_v only_o to_o school-principle_n and_o arguing_n without_o skill_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o italian_a bishop_n depend_v on_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n never_o apply_v themselves_o to_o search_v out_o truth_n but_o to_o hinder_v any_o the_o least_o break_v forth_o of_o it_o if_o it_o oppose_v any_o profit_n or_o advantage_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o any_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o justify_v the_o protestant_n who_o they_o will_v never_o permit_v to_o speak_v for_o themselves_o nor_o be_v they_o will_v any_o thing_n shall_v be_v conclude_v but_o what_o the_o pope_n of_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o most_o notorious_a corrupter_n and_o tyrant_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n like_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o book_n not_o long_o since_o publish_v entitle_v the_o mystery_n of_o jesuitism_n will_v find_v that_o the_o chief_a leader_n now_o in_o the_o popish_a church_n the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v whole_o bend_v though_o against_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o carry_v on_o their_o own_o interest_n by_o any_o device_n whatsoever_o without_o regard_n either_o to_o rule_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o morality_n deliver_v by_o infidel_n philosopher_n so_o that_o the_o talk_n of_o h._n t._n concern_v a_o world_n of_o wise_a and_o disintere_v man_n among_o popish_a teacher_n be_v like_o the_o talk_n of_o a_o company_n of_o honest_a woman_n in_o a_o society_n of_o notorious_a whore_n or_o of_o just_a man_n in_o a_o band_n of_o robber_n h._n t._n add_v it_o be_v the_o assurance_n of_o this_o impossibility_n that_o move_v the_o church_n of_o the_o present_a age_n to_o resolve_v her_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n into_o the_o precedent_a age_n and_o so_o from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o son_n to_o father_n up_o to_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v it_o say_v we_o believe_v it_o because_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o answ_n 1._o this_o resolution_n of_o faith_n not_o into_o the_o scripture_n testimony_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o next_o age_n and_o so_o upward_o and_o thereby_o judge_v what_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v can_v beget_v no_o other_o than_o a_o humane_a faith_n since_o in_o this_o way_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v suppose_v to_o teach_v what_o the_o succeed_a age_n have_v teach_v nor_o be_v it_o any_o better_a than_o a_o uncertain_a way_n since_o in_o some_o age_n it_o can_v be_v know_v what_o be_v teach_v in_o many_o point_n of_o controversy_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o author_n confess_v pag._n 25._o there_o be_v no_o general_n or_o provincial_a council_n that_o decide_v any_o controversy_n of_o moment_n in_o the_o ten_o age_n which_o and_o the_o next_o before_o it_o be_v by_o genebrard_n and_o bellarmine_n count_v unhappy_a for_o want_v of_o learned_a man_n nor_o can_v this_o be_v any_o other_o than_o a_o fraudulent_a device_n to_o draw_v man_n from_o immediate_a search_n into_o the_o scripture_n for_o
necessity_n of_o infant_n baptism_n or_o for_o change_v the_o saturday_n into_o sunday_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o in_o particular_a as_o protestant_n will_v acknowledge_v if_o they_o be_v once_o sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o sufficient_a we_o believe_v all_o the_o bible_n unless_o we_o believe_v it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v all_o heresy_n out_o of_o it_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o she_o can_v never_o do_v without_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o any_o of_o the_o point_n foremention_v i_o reply_v unless_o the_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o plead_v for_o arian_n photinian_o macedorians_n and_o socinian_o i_o know_v not_o why_o he_o shall_v so_o often_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a nature_n the_o son_n consubstantiality_n to_o the_o father_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o and_o his_o godhead_n as_o apostolical_a unwritten_a tradition_n sure_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o bring_v into_o question_n these_o doctrine_n which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n will_v never_o be_v believe_v by_o intelligent_a christian_n for_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o trent_n say_n who_o proceed_n never_o tend_v to_o clear_a truth_n but_o to_o juggle_v with_o the_o world_n this_o be_v one_o certain_a evidence_n that_o they_o never_o intend_v to_o clear_a truth_n because_o they_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n unheard_a nor_o will_v ever_o permit_v they_o to_o come_v to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o in_o any_o impartial_a assembly_n till_o which_o be_v do_v no_o man_n can_v construe_v the_o proceed_n of_o a_o council_n to_o be_v any_o other_o than_o practice_n to_o suppress_v truth_n and_o for_o their_o juggle_n they_o be_v so_o notorious_a that_o many_o papist_n themselves_o have_v observe_v they_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n especial_o about_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o laity_n have_v the_o cup_n priest_n marriage_n in_o which_o papist_n themselves_o find_v that_o they_o be_v mere_o mock_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o this_o man_n deny_v the_o antecedent_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o savour_v of_o such_o a_o imputation_n of_o a_o defect_n in_o god_n as_o tend_v to_o atheism_n for_o sure_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v term_v a_o provident_a and_o just_a god_n who_o declare_v his_o mind_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o promise_a life_n to_o they_o that_o observe_v his_o word_n and_o threaten_a death_n and_o damnation_n to_o they_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o obey_v yet_o do_v not_o set_v down_o all_o necessary_a point_n therein_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o obey_v unto_o life_n yea_o do_v not_o h._n t._n by_o deny_v it_o contradict_v himself_o who_o say_v pag._n 105._o in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o the_o book_n which_o they_o write_v be_v contain_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o consequence_n if_o it_o be_v not_o good_a the_o bible_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n either_o for_o belief_n or_o practice_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o explicit_o and_o plain_o therefore_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n neither_o be_v his_o own_o second_o argument_n good_a for_o tradition_n pag._n 105._o in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o the_o book_n which_o they_o write_v be_v contain_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o infallible_a mean_n of_o know_v they_o be_v the_o infallible_a and_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n in_o both_o the_o consequence_n be_v the_o same_o as_o for_o his_o instance_n i_o say_v if_o the_o three_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o council_n be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o in_o particular_a though_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o their_o nonsense_n gibberish_n the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_a council_n approve_v by_o he_o require_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o neither_o have_v the_o church_n as_o he_o term_v it_o power_n to_o propose_v any_o thing_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o in_o particular_a but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o bible_n nor_o have_v it_o such_o authority_n as_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o if_o it_o do_v propound_v they_o though_o never_o so_o sufficient_o but_o be_v bind_v to_o reject_v they_o as_o contrary_a to_o the_o duty_n we_o owe_v to_o christ_n of_o acknowledge_v he_o our_o only_a master_n much_o more_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o contend_v against_o they_o when_o they_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o teach_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o cruel_o and_o proud_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o a_o most_o antichristian_a manner_n and_o impose_v on_o they_o as_o apostolical_a tradition_n thing_n contrary_a to_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o bible_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o all_o protestant_n will_v acknowledge_v all_o thsse_n point_n he_o mention_v as_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o in_o particular_a i_o grant_v it_o not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v all_o the_o bible_n unless_o we_o believe_v it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n but_o aver_v we_o can_v believe_v it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v all_o heresy_n out_o of_o it_o without_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a in_o any_o of_o those_o point_n in_o which_o the_o error_n be_v as_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v able_a by_o it_o to_o vanquish_v satan_n for_o which_o reason_n it_o be_v term_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n ephes_n 6._o 17._o and_o for_o tradition_n or_o pope_n decree_n they_o be_v but_o a_o leaden_a sword_n without_o fire_n and_o faggot_n yea_o there_o be_v so_o much_o vanity_n in_o they_o as_o make_v they_o ridiculous_a and_o so_o unfit_a for_o refutation_n and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o horrid_a butchery_n and_o cruelty_n which_o prince_n drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o fornication_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n make_v of_o their_o best_a subject_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o pope_n and_o popish_a priest_n nothing_o will_v appear_v more_o contemptible_a than_o their_o decision_n yet_o more_o object_n doubtless_o for_o speculative_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n book_n be_v a_o safe_a and_o more_o infallible_a way_n or_o rule_n than_o oral_a tradition_n answ_n you_o be_v mistake_v book_n be_v infinite_o more_o liable_a to_o casualty_n and_o corruption_n than_o tradition_n as_o well_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o language_n into_o which_o they_o be_v translate_v as_o the_o diversity_n of_o translation_n scarce_o any_o two_o edition_n agree_v but_o all_o pretend_v one_o to_o mend_v the_o other_o beside_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o copy_n and_o copyists_n with_o the_o equivocation_n and_o uncertainty_n of_o dead_a and_o write_v word_n if_o captious_o wrest_v or_o literal_o insist_v on_o who_o can_v prove_v any_o one_o copy_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o uncorrupted_a those_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n own_o hand_n we_o have_v not_o or_o who_o can_v convince_v that_o any_o one_o text_n of_o the_o bible_n can_v have_v no_o other_o sense_n and_o meaning_n than_o what_o be_v convenient_a for_o his_o purpose_n insist_v only_o on_o the_o dead_a letter_n all_o which_o danger_n and_o difficulty_n be_v avoid_v by_o rely_v on_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o bind_v man_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o deliver_v nothing_o for_o faith_n but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o such_o by_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o think_v i_o not_o foolish_a say_v st._n augustin_n for_o use_v these_o term_n for_o i_o have_v so_o learned_a these_o thing_n by_o tradition_n neither_o dare_v i_o deliver_v they_o to_o thou_o any_o other_o way_n than_o as_o i_o have_v receive_v they_o lib._n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a cap._n 3._o i_o reply_v a_o more_o impudent_o and_o palpable_o false_a discourse_n than_o this_o be_v a_o man_n shall_v seldom_o meet_v with_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n and_o use_v among_o man_n and_o condemn_v all_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o most_o civil_a people_n of_o folly_n
profession_n or_o other_o act_n it_o be_v which_o make_v schism_n nor_o be_v this_o a_o definition_n which_o do_v agree_v with_o their_o own_o grant_n for_o the_o council_n that_o depose_v pope_n separate_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o french_a in_o their_o pragmatic_n sanction_n and_o the_o venetian_n that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v pope_n paul_n the_o five_o his_o monitory_n deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v schismatic_n nor_o be_v it_o show_v how_o either_o be_v damnable_a or_o sacrilegious_a nor_o how_o protestant_n be_v sectary_n or_o which_o sectary_n be_v guilty_a of_o both_o or_o either_o so_o that_o in_o this_o tenet_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o ambiguity_n and_o imperfection_n yet_o since_o by_o what_o follow_v we_o may_v guess_v his_o meaning_n let_v we_o view_v his_o dispute_n sect_n ii_o protestant_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v sectary_n by_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o reformation_n the_o argument_n say_v h._n t._n all_o such_o as_o be_v wilful_o divide_v both_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o consequent_o in_o a_o damnable_a state_n but_o most_o protestant_n and_o other_o sectary_n be_v wilful_o divide_v both_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n therefore_o they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o consequent_o in_o a_o damnable_a state_n the_o major_n be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o very_a notion_n and_o definition_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n the_o sequel_n of_o it_o prove_v thus_o by_o scriture_n titus_n 3._o 10._o 2_o peter_n 2._o 1._o judas_n 13._o rom._n 16._o 17._o matth._n 18._o 7_o 17_o 18._o 2_o thess_n 3._o 14._o answ_n 1._o by_o deny_v his_o definition_n to_o be_v good_a and_o that_o any_o of_o the_o text_n prove_v it_o 2._o by_o grant_v the_o sequel_n of_o they_o that_o be_v true_o term_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n but_o not_o of_o such_o as_o he_o call_v such_o to_o wit_n that_o do_v wilful_o divide_v from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n false_o by_o he_o call_v catholic_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o examine_v each_o text_n till_o they_o be_v show_v to_o prove_v what_o be_v deny_v the_o minor_a say_v he_o be_v prove_v because_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o church_n therefore_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o as_o well_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o matter_n of_o government_n as_o plain_o appear_v by_o all_o we_o have_v say_v and_o be_v yet_o confirm_v because_o when_o they_o begin_v their_o separation_n luther_n in_o germany_n tyndal_n in_o england_n etc._n etc._n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v in_o most_o quiet_a possession_n of_o her_o tenet_n in_o perfect_a peace_n and_o unity_n her_o doctrine_n and_o government_n be_v the_o same_o they_o have_v be_v not_o only_o to_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o protestant_n confess_v but_o to_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v manifest_a both_o by_o the_o public_a liturgy_n council_n and_o record_n of_o all_o age_n in_o which_o no_o one_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o substantial_a point_n of_o discipline_n then_o profess_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o oppose_v by_o protestant_n have_v ever_o be_v censure_v and_o condemn_v as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a but_o all_o for_o the_o most_o part_n actual_o define_v and_o establish_v against_o ancient_a heretic_n as_o you_o have_v see_v in_o the_o council_n answ_n 1._o the_o minor_a speak_v of_o most_o protestant_n but_o mention_n none_o but_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n and_o tyndal_n in_o england_n now_o it_o be_v no_o good_a proof_n against_o we_o that_o we_o be_v schismatic_n because_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n protestant_n be_v so_o and_o tyndal_n begin_v separation_n in_o england_n it_o be_v tell_v they_o by_o c●illingworth_n c._n 5._o p_o 1._o against_o knot_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o unjust_a separation_n begin_v and_o so_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o leader_n and_o yet_o no_o schism_n in_o the_o follower_n in_o after_o age_n as_o in_o a_o commonwealth_n it_o may_v be_v a_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n to_o set_v up_o another_o government_n and_o governor_n in_o the_o first_o author_n and_o yet_o none_o in_o the_o posterity_n to_o continue_v they_o but_o rather_o their_o duty_n to_o maintain_v they_o in_o order_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o liberty_n which_o be_v unjust_o obtain_v at_o first_o 2._o it_o be_v deny_v that_o luther_n or_o tyndal_n divide_v themselves_o wilful_o that_o be_v without_o necessity_n it_o be_v know_v in_o the_o history_n of_o sleidan_n and_o other_o that_o luther_n at_o first_o speak_v honourable_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o have_v continue_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n till_o leo_n the_o ten_o do_v by_o his_o bull_n condemn_v his_o doctrine_n afore_o he_o have_v hear_v he_o and_o he_o see_v plain_o as_o the_o world_n find_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v never_o by_o good_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n go_v about_o to_o refute_v they_o but_o by_o excommunication_n fire_n and_o war_n to_o which_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o they_o endeavour_v to_o root_v they_o out_o and_o for_o tyndal_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o book_n of_o act_n and_o monument_n of_o the_o church_n write_v by_o mr._n fox_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o that_o tyndal_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o popish_a bishop_n and_o his_o body_n burn_v in_o brabant_n now_o sure_o be_v the_o protestant_n never_o so_o erroneous_a yet_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n tie_v they_o to_o run_v away_o from_o such_o cruel_a wolf_n as_o in_o stead_n of_o teach_v they_o with_o love_n endeavour_v to_o destroy_v they_o with_o cruelty_n 3._o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o actual_o join_v with_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o hussites_n in_o bohomia_n and_o the_o waldenses_n about_o the_o alps_n who_o be_v true_a church_n of_o christ_n however_o the_o romanist_n term_v they_o nor_o do_v they_o ever_o renounce_v communion_n with_o the_o greek_a eastern_a or_o southern_a church_n though_o by_o reason_n of_o distance_n and_o the_o power_n they_o be_v under_o they_o can_v not_o have_v actual_a communion_n with_o they_o and_o by_o their_o desire_n of_o a_o free_a council_n in_o germany_n not_o call_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o emperor_n and_o christian_a prince_n nor_o of_o bishop_n swear_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o man_n that_o be_v equal_a judge_n by_o who_o their_o doctrine_n may_v be_v examine_v and_o by_o their_o often_o colloquy_n for_o reconciliation_n they_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o try_v all_o mean_n they_o can_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n to_o have_v prevent_v the_o breach_n between_o they_o and_o the_o popish_a party_n who_o be_v certain_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n and_o true_o the_o schismatic_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o their_o own_o story_n such_o as_o thuanus_n friar_n paul_n history_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n and_o other_o who_o relate_v the_o proceed_n of_o those_o time_n and_o not_o the_o protestant_n 4._o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o they_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o party_n from_o who_o the_o protestant_n separate_v have_v relinquish_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a time_n for_o five_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o and_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o new_a upstart_n doctrine_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_v image_n transubstantiation_n half-communion_n as_o sufficient_a denial_n of_o priest_n marriage_n pope_n universal_a monarchy_n purgatory-fire_n indulgence_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n justification_n by_o work_n and_o many_o more_o which_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o first_o christian_n nor_o have_v the_o contrary_n appear_v by_o any_o thing_n h._n t._n have_v say_v before_o as_o the_o reader_n of_o this_o answer_n may_v perceive_v 5._o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o they_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o point_n of_o her_o government_n the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o one_o universal_a bishop_n be_v never_o the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o first_o general_a council_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v superior_a to_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v always_o resist_v his_o claim_n of_o supremacy_n and_o many_o as_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n barliam_n and_o other_o have_v write_v against_o it_o as_o a_o unjust_a claim_n 6._o
frame_v but_o james_n who_o speak_v after_o be_v he_o according_a to_o who_o sentence_n the_o decree_n be_v frame_v entire_o however_o peter_n begin_v before_o so_o that_o by_o this_o reason_n james_n have_v the_o primacy_n and_o not_o peter_n a_o like_a in_o consequent_a be_v this_o peter_n remain_v not_o always_o at_o antioch_n as_o all_o that_o church_n acknowledge_v nor_o do_v she_o ever_o challenge_v the_o first_o chair_n in_o any_o general_a council_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o council_n ergo_fw-la peter_n translate_v his_o chair_n from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n risum_fw-la teneat_fw-la be_v araici_fw-la as_o if_o peter_n do_v always_o remain_v at_o rome_n or_o that_o because_o we_o read_v not_o of_o antioch_n challenge_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o make_v or_o as_o if_o the_o not_o challenge_v the_o first_o chair_n be_v because_o of_o peter_n translation_n of_o his_o chair_n from_o thence_o to_o rome_n whereas_o the_o very_a decree_n of_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n can._n 28._o give_v rome_n the_o first_o chair_n because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n not_o by_o reason_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n or_o translation_n of_o his_o chair_n from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n of_o inconsequence_n be_v the_o next_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n sardica_n in_o illyria_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 400._o western_a father_n 300._o estern_a 76._o decree_v that_o in_o case_n of_o bishop_n for_o honour_n of_o st._n peter_n memory_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v from_o whatsoever_o bishop_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can._n 3._o therefore_o the_o primacy_n be_v in_o peter_n and_o after_o he_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o 1._o this_o council_n whatever_o it_o be_v be_v not_o in_o the_o first_o or_o second_o age_n 2._o nor_o be_v it_o reckon_v no_o not_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o old_a among_o ecumenical_a council_n much_o less_o by_o the_o greek_n who_o refuse_v to_o be_v present_a as_o socrates_n relate_v l._n 2._o c._n 16._o unless_o athana●ius_n be_v remove_v for_o not_o yield_v whereto_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n meet_v by_o themselves_o at_o philippi_n in_o thracia_n and_o make_v decree_n apart_o say_v sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o yea_o however_o in_o the_o late_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n at_o paris_n corrupt_a device_n be_v use_v to_o gain_v the_o credit_n of_o a_o general_a council_n to_o it_o and_o for_o some_o advantage_n to_o the_o papacy_n to_o make_v its_o canon_n of_o authority_n yet_o h._n t._n make_v it_o to_o have_v have_v but_o seventy_o six_o eastern_a father_n when_o there_o be_v three_o hundred_o western_a and_o the_o ignorance_n of_o any_o general_a council_n establish_v appeal_n from_o africa_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n 3._o nor_o do_v the_o canon_n itself_o decree_v as_o h._n t._n set_v down_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o receive_v appeal_n and_o to_o judge_v the_o cause_n but_o in_o case_n of_o the_o deposition_n of_o a_o bishop_n they_o permit_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o deliberate_v whether_o the_o judgement_n shall_v be_v renew_v and_o then_o consider_v whether_o he_o shall_v send_v some_o from_o his_o side_n who_o may_v be_v present_a at_o the_o renew_a cognizance_n of_o it_o and_o if_o it_o shall_v seem_v meet_a also_o appoint_v judge_n out_o of_o a_o neighbour_a province_n none_o of_o which_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o judiciary_n power_n but_o only_o a_o directory_n nor_o be_v this_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o any_o other_o than_o those_o of_o the_o western_a country_n the_o african_n and_o greek_n ever_o reject_v it_o 4._o the_o very_a canon_n itself_o express_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o not_o any_o divine_a appointment_n or_o ancient_a use_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v to_o the_o contrary_a can._n 5._o determine_v that_o such_o controversy_n shall_v be_v end_v in_o a_o provincial_a council_n but_o it_o be_v then_o propose_v first_o by_o hosius_n for_o honour_n of_o st._n peter_n memory_n and_o the_o last_o determination_n of_o the_o cause_n to_o be_v by_o a_o council_n can._n 13._o &_o 14._o no_o betis_fw-la that_o which_o h._n t._n add_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n anno_fw-la 451._o say_v all_o primary_n and_o chief_a honour_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v for_o the_o archbishop_n of_o old_a rome_n therefore_o this_o be_v good_a evidence_n that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n the_o primacy_n be_v in_o peter_n and_o the_o pope_n for_o neither_o do_v that_o council_n hold_v in_o the_o five_o age_n mention_v what_o honour_n or_o primacy_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o the_o two_o first_o age_n nor_o do_v it_o ascribe_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n any_o superiority_n but_o do_v express_o in_o that_o very_a canon_n ascribe_v to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n equality_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o power_n however_o he_o be_v first_o in_o order_n and_o this_o be_v determine_v notwithstanding_o the_o reluctancy_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n the_o rest_n be_v as_o vain_a pope_n antherus_n anno_fw-la 238._o say_v peter_n be_v change_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n gregory_n in_o the_o six_o age_n say_v he_o know_v no_o bishop_n but_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n epist_n 62._o ergo_fw-la peter_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o supreme_a headship_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o first_o age._n as_o if_o the_o counterfeit_a writing_n of_o a_o pope_n in_o the_o three_o age_n or_o the_o say_n of_o a_o pope_n in_o the_o six_o age_n of_o what_o be_v then_o in_o use_n though_o not_o true_a since_o the_o greek_a bishop_n to_o his_o knowledge_n be_v not_o subject_a without_o tell_v they_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v so_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n either_o of_o right_n or_o possession_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o so_o great_a a_o power_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n now_o claim_v what_o he_o add_v that_o the_o false_o so_o call_v canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n define_v that_o if_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n the_o oblation_n h._n t._n foist_n in_o the_o word_n mass_n be_v make_v shall_v not_o communicate_v he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_a as_o give_v suspicion_n of_o he_o who_o have_v sacrifice_v that_o he_o have_v not_o right_o offer_v can._n 9_o approve_v in_o the_o six_o general_a synod_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n profess_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o so_o call_v propitiatory_a for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o the_o mass_n be_v as_o frivolous_a for_o neither_o be_v those_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o many_o thing_n in_o they_o show_v and_o if_o they_o be_v private_a mass_n use_v by_o papist_n shall_v be_v condemn_v nor_o do_v it_o follow_v there_o be_v mention_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o offer_v therefore_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v christ_n offer_v as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n proper_o so_o call_v since_o it_o may_v be_v term_v as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n a_o eucharistical_a or_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n not_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n proper_o so_o call_v this_o h._n t._n in_o the_o two_o first_o age_n bring_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o minor_n let_v we_o go_v on_o to_o view_v his_o catalogue_n in_o the_o next_o age._n he_o set_v down_o fifteen_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereof_o the_o last_o pope_n marcellinus_n be_v condemn_v in_o a_o council_n at_o sinuessa_n if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o council_n for_o his_o idolatry_n confess_v no_o council_n in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n yet_o claim_v a_o succession_n of_o pope_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n sufficient_a for_o his_o purpose_n and_o then_o set_v down_o decree_n of_o eight_o pope_n in_o their_o epistle_n which_o have_v be_v long_o since_o prove_v counterfeit_n by_o dr._n john_n rainold_n confer_v with_o hart_n chap._n 8._o divis_fw-la 3._o in_o which_o the_o forger_n tell_v we_o that_o pope_n anacletus_fw-la decree_v anno_fw-la dom._n 101._o that_o priest_n when_o they_o sacrifice_v to_o our_o lord_n must_v not_o do_v it_o alone_o which_o be_v against_o private_a mass_n and_o prove_v not_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n proper_o so_o call_v in_o the_o mass_n that_o the_o apostle_n so_o appoint_v and_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v if_o so_o then_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o now_o hold_v private_a mass_n hold_v not_o the_o same_o tenet_n it_o do_v then_o if_o more_o difficult_a question_n shall_v arise_v let_v they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v h._n t._n his_o addition_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n have_v ordain_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o our_o lord_n no_o where_o extant_a nor_o any_o way_n probable_a that_o pope_n alexander_n decree_v that_o bread_n only_o and_o wine_n mingle_v with_o water_n shall_v be_v